Project Gutenberg Australia
a treasure-trove of literature
treasure found hidden with no evidence of ownership




Title: The Hash-knife Outfit (1933)
Author: Zane Grey
* A Project Gutenberg of Australia eBook *
eBook No.: 0608331.txt
Language:  English
Date first posted: November 2006
Date most recently updated: November 2006

Project Gutenberg of Australia eBooks are created from printed editions
which are in the public domain in Australia, unless a copyright notice
is included. We do NOT keep any eBooks in compliance with a particular
paper edition.

Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this
file.

This eBook is made available at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg of Australia License which may be viewed online at
http://gutenberg.net.au/licence.html

To contact Project Gutenberg of Australia go to http://gutenberg.net.au

--------------------------------------------------------------------------

Title: The Hash-knife Outfit (1933)
Author: Zane Grey





CHAPTER ONE

It was a rainy November night down on the Cottonwood. The wind complained
in the pines outside the cabin and whispered under the eaves. A fine cold
mist blew in the open chinks between the logs. But the ruddy cedar fire
in the huge stone fireplace gave the interior of the cabin a comfortable
aspect and shone brightly upon the inmates scattered around. A coffee-pot
steamed on some coals; browned biscuits showed in an open iron oven; and
thick slices of beef mingled a savoury odour with the smoke. The men,
however, were busy on pipes and cigarettes, evidently having finished
supper.

"Reckon this storm looks like an early winter," remarked Jed Stone,
leader of the outfit. He stood to one side of the fire, a fine, lithe
figure of a man, still a cowboy, despite his forty years and more of hard
Arizona life. His profile, sharp in the fire glow, was strong and clean,
in no way hinting of the evil repute that had long recorded him an
outlaw. When he turned to pick up a burning ember for his pipe the bright
blaze shone on light, rather scant hair, on light eyes, and a striking face
devoid of beard.

"Wal, early or late, I never seen no bad weather down hyar," replied a
man back in the shadow.

"Huh! Much you know about the Mogollans. I've seen a hell of a winter
right here," spoke up another, in a deep chesty voice. "An' I'll be
trackin' somethin' beside hoofs in a couple of days." This from the
hunter Anderson, known to his comrades as Tracks, who had lived longer
than any of the others in this wild section, seemed to strengthen Stone's
intimation. Anderson was a serious man, long matured, as showed in the
white in his black beard. He had big deep eyes which reflected the
fire-light.

"I'll bet we don't get holed up yet awhile," interposed Carr, the gambler
of the outfit. He was a grey-faced, grey-haired man of fifty. They called
him Stoneface.

"What do you say, Pecos?" inquired the leader of a long-limbed,
sandy-moustached Texan who sat propped against the wall, directly
opposite the fire.

"Me? ...Shore I don't think nothin' aboot it," drawled Pecos.

"We might winter down in the Sierra Ancas," said Stone, reflectively.

"Boss, somethin's been eatin' you ever since we had thet fight over
Traft's drift fence," spoke up Croak Malloy, from his seat against some
packs. His voice had a peculiar croaking quality, but that was certainly
not wholly the reason for his significant nickname. He was the deadliest
of this notorious outfit, so long a thorn in the flesh of the cattlemen
whose stock ranged the Mogollans.

"I ain't denyin' it," replied Stone.

"An' why for?" complained the croaker, his crooked evil face shining in
the red light. "We got off without a couple of scratches, an' we crippled
them two Diamond riders. Didn't we lay low the last nine miles of thet
fence?"

"Croak, I happen to know old Jim Traft. I rode for him twenty years ago,"
answered Stone, seriously.

"Jed, as I see it, this drift fence of Traft's has split the range. An'
there'll be hell to pay," snapped the other.

"Do you reckon it means another Pleasant Valley War? That was only seven
years ago--thereabouts. An' the bad blood still rankles."

Croak Malloy's reply was rendered indistinguishable by hot arguments of
Carr and Anderson. But the little rider's appearance seemed silently
convincing. He was a small misshapen man of uncertain age, with pale eyes
of fire set unevenly in a crooked face, and he looked the deadliness by
which he had long been known to the range.

Just then the sodden beat of hoofs sounded outside.

"Ha! that will be Madden an' Sonora," said Stone, with satisfaction, and
he strode to the door to call out. The answer was reassuring. He returned
to the fire and held his palms to the heat. Then he turned and put his
hands behind his back.

Presently a man entered the cabin, carrying a heavy pack, which he
deposited against the wall, then approached the fire, to remove dripping
sombrero and coat. This action disclosed the swarthy face and beady
bright eyes of the Mexican whom Stone had called Sonora.

"Glad you're back, Sonora," said the leader, heartily. "How about things?"

"No good," replied Sonora, and when he shook his head drops of rain water
sputtered in the fire.

"Ahuh!" ejaculated Stone, and he leaned against the stone chimney, back
in the shadow.

The other rider came in, breathing heavily under another pack, which he
let fall with a thud, and approached the fire, smelling of rain and
horses and the woods. He appeared to be a nondescript sort of man. Water
ran off him in little streams. He hung his coat on a peg in the chimney,
but did not remove his battered black sombrero from which the rain drops
dripped.

"Wal, boss, me an' Sonora got here," he said, cheerfully.

"So I see," returned Stone, quietly.

"Bad up on top. Snowin' hard, but reckon it won't last long. Too wet."

"What you want to bet it won't last?" queried Carr.

Madden laughed, and knelt before the fire, his huge spurs prodding his
hips.

"Lemme eat," he said. "It'll be the first bite since yestiddy mornin'."

The youngest of the group, a cowboy in garb and gait, rose to put more
wood on the fire. It blazed up brightly. He had a weak, handsome face,
with viciousness written all over it, yet strangely out of place among
these hardened visages. No one need have been told why he was there.

The returned members of the outfit did not desist from appeasing their
appetites until all the drink, bread, and beef were gone.

"Cleaned the platter," ejaculated Madden. "Gosh! there's nothin' like a
hunk of juicy salty meat when you're starved...An' here's a real cigar
for everybody. Nice an' dry, too." He tossed them to eager hands, and
taking up a blazing stick he lighted one for himself, his dark face and
steaming sombrero bent over the fire. Then he sat back, puffed a huge
cloud of white smoke, and exclaimed: "Aghh!...Now, boss, shoot."

Stone kicked a box nearer the fire and sat down upon it. Then from a
shadowed corner limped a stalwart man, scarred of face and evil of eye,
with a sheriff's badge glittering like a star on the front of his vest.
Some of the others edged closer. All except Croak Malloy evinced keen
eagerness. Nothing mattered to this little outlaw.

"Maddy, did you fetch all the supplies?" asked Stone.

"Yep. An' kept them dry, too. There's four more packs out in the shed.
The tobacco, whisky, shells--all that particular stuffs is in the pack
Sonora fetched in. An' I'm here to state I don't want to pack down
Cottonwood any more in the snow an' rain. We couldn't see a hand before
our eyes. An' just follered the horses."

"Any trouble at Flag?" went on Stone.

"Nary trouble," answered Madden, brightly. "All our worryin' was for
nothin'."

"Ahuh. Then neither of those drift-fence cowboys we shot up died?"

"Nope. Frost was around with a crutch. An' Hump Stevens will live, so
they told me."

"How did Jim Traft take the layin' down of nine miles of his drift fence?"
"Which Jim Traft do you mean?"

"The old man, you fool. Who'd ever count that tenderfoot of a nephew?"

"Wal, boss, I reckon you'll have to count him. For he's shore countin' in
Flag...Of course I could only get round-about gossip in the saloons an'
stores, you know. But we can gamble on it. That nine-mile drop of Traft's
drift fence didn't make him bat an eye, though they told me it riled young
Jim somethin' fierce. Jed, the old cattle king is goin' through with that
drift fence, an' with more'n that, which I'll tell you presently. As I
got it the drift fence is comin' more to favour with cattlemen as time
goes on. Bambridge is the only big rancher against it, an' shore you know
why he is. But the fence ain't the only thing talked about...Boss, the
Cibeque outfit is busted."

"No!--You don't say?" ejaculated Stone.

"Shore is. Most owin' to that cowpuncher Hack Jocelyn who left the
Diamond outfit an' throwed in with the Cibeque. That split the Cibeque.
It seems Jocelyn lost his head over that little Dunn girl, Molly, sister
to Slinger Dunn. You've seen her, Jed, at West Fork."

"Yes. Prettiest kid in the country."

"Wal, Jocelyn was after her hard, an' he double-crossed the Haverlys an'
Slinger Dunn by tryin' to play both ends against the middle. He hatched a
low-down deal, if I ever knowed one. But it fell through. He got away
with the girl Molly, however, an' thet precipitated hell. Slinger quit
the Cibeque, trailed them to a cabin in the woods. Back of Tobe's Well
somewhere. Must have been the very cabin Anderson put up there years ago.
Wal, Jocelyn an' the rest of the Cibeque had kidnapped young Jim Traft
for ransom. But Jocelyn meant to collect the ransom an' then murder the
boy. The Haverlys wasn't in on this, so the story goes. Anyway, things
worked to a hot pitch at this cabin. Jocelyn had a drink too many, they
say, an' wanted to drag the little girl Molly off 'n the woods. An' she,
like what you'd expect of Slinger Dunn's sister, raised hell. Jocelyn
tried to shoot young Jim. An' she fought him--bit him like a wildcat.
Wal, Slinger bobbed up, Injun as he is, an' killed Jocelyn. Then he had
it out with the Haverlys, killin' both of them. He was terrible shot up
himself. They fetched him to Flag. But he'll live."

"I'm dod-blasted glad, though there ain't any love lost between me an'
Slinger," said Stone, forcibly. "No wonder Flag wasn't excited over our
little brush with Stevens an' Frost."

"Wal, thet's all of thet news," went on Madden, importantly. "Some more will
interest you-all. Bambridge lost his case against Traft. He had no case
at all, accordin' to the court. It seems Traft got this Yellow Jacket
Ranch an' range from Blodgett, years ago. Bambridge didn't even know the
deeds were on record in Flag. He was hoppin' mad, they said, an' he an'
Traft had it hot an' heavy after the court proceedin's. Traft jest about
accused Bambridge of shady cattle deals down here. Bambridge threw a
gun, but somebody knocked it out of his hand. Wal, thet riled the old
cattle king. What do you think he said, boss? I got it from a feller I
know, who was in the courtroom."

"Maddy, I'll bet it was a heap," replied Stone, wagging his head.

"Heap! Reckon you hit it. Traft swore he'd run Bambridge off the Arizona
ranges. What's more, he made a present of this Yellow Jacket Ranch, which
Bambridge an' you reckoned you owned yourselves, to his nephew, young
Jim, an'--but guess who?"

"I'm not guessin'. Out with it," rejoined Stone, hardily.

"No one less than Slinger Dunn," announced Madden, with the triumphant
tone of the sensation-lover.

"What?" bellowed Stone.

"I told you, boss. Old Traft gave this ranch an' range to young Jim an'
Slinger--half an' half. Providin' thet Slinger throwed in with the
Diamond outfit an' helped them clean up Yellow Jacket."

"Haw! Haw!" croaked Malloy, with vicious humour.

"Slinger Dunn an' the Diamond!" exclaimed Stone, incredulously.
Evidently it was a most astounding circumstance, and one fraught with
bewildering possibilities.

"Thet's it, boss, an' they're ridin' down here after Thanksgivin'," ended
Madden, and took a long pull on his cigar.

Stone once more leaned in the shadow, his dim profile bent toward the
fire. Madden stretched himself, boots to the heat, and gave himself over
to the enjoyment of his cigar. All except the leader puffed white clouds
of smoke which rose to catch the draught and waft through the chinks
between the logs.

"What do you make of it, boss?" finally queried Anderson.

Jed Stone vouchsafed no reply.

"Humph!" grunted the hunter. "Wal, Frank, you're the green hand in this
outfit. What you make of Maddy's news?"

The cowboy stirred and sat up. "I reckon it can't be done," he replied.

"What can't?"

"Cleanin' up Yellow Jacket."

The hunter took a long draw at his cigar and expelled a volume of smoke,
while he thoughtfully stroked his black beard.

"Whar you from, Frank?"

"Born in Arizonie."

"An' you say thet? Wal...Reckon it ain't no wonder you ended up with the
Hash-Knife outfit," said Anderson, reflectively. Then he turned his
attention to the Mexican, who sat nearest. "Sonora, you been herdin'
sheep for years on this range?"

"Si, señor."

"You've seen a heap of men shot?"

"Many men, señor."

"Did you talk to sheep-herders in Flag?"

"Si. All say mucho malo. Old Traft bad medicine. If he start job he
do job."

Whereupon Tracks Anderson, warming as to a trail, set upon the
long-limbed, sandy-moustached Texan. "Pecos, what was you when you rode
thet river you're named fer?"

"Me? Much the same as I am now," drawled the rustler, with an easy
laugh. "Only I wasn't ridin' in such good safe company."

"Safe, huh? Wal, thet's a compliment to Jed an' the Hash-Knife. But is
it sense? ...To my way of thinkin' this--drift fence has spelled a
change fer Arizona ranges. There's a mind behind that idee. It's big. It
throws the sunlight on trails thet have been dim."

Croak Malloy did not wait to be interrogated. He spat as he emitted a
cloud of smoke, which hid his strange visage.

"If you ask me I'll tell you Maddy's talk is jest town talk," he croaked.
"I've heard the same fer ten years. An' Yellow Jacket is wilder today
than it ever was. There's more cattle runnin' than then. More rustlers in
the woods. More crooked ranchers. An' one like Bambridge wasn't ever
heard when I first rode into the Tonto...An' what's a bunch of
slick-ridin' cowboys to us? I'll kill this young Traft, an' Sonora can
do fer Slinger Dunn. Thet'll be the last of the Diamond."

"Very pretty, Croak. It might be done, easy enough, if we take the first
step. I ain't aimin' to class thet wild Diamond outfit with the
Hash-Knife. It ain't no fair fight. Boys ag'in' men. An' this is shore
allowin' fer Slinger Dunn an' thet Prentiss fellar."

"Tracks," spoke up Pecos, dryly, "you're plumb fergettin' there's a Texan
in the Diamond. Lonestar Holliday. An' you can bet the Texas I come from
wouldn't be ashamed of him."

"Humph!--Lang, you swear you come honest by thet sheriff badge," went on
the hunter, in a grim humour. "Let's hear from you."

"There ain't no law but might in the Mogollans an' never will be in our
day," replied the ex-sheriff.

"Kirreck," snapped Anderson. "Thet's what I'm drivin' at. Our day may be
damn good an' short."

"Aw, hell! Tracks, you need some licker," croaked Malloy. "Let's open
the pack an' have some."

"No," came from Stone with sharp suddenness, showing how intent he was on
the colloquy.

"Wal, it narrows down to Stoneface," continued Anderson, imperturbably.
"But seein' he's a gambler, you can't ever get straight from him."

"Tracks, I'll bet you them gold wheels you'll be hibernatin' fer keeps
when spring comes," said Carr, clinking gold coins in his palms.

"Quién sabe? But I won't bet you, Stoneface. You get hunches from the
air, an' Gawd only knows you might be communicatin' with the dead."

A silence ensued, during which the hunter gazed with questioning eyes at
the shadowed leader, but he did not voice his thought. He returned
diligently to the cigar that appeared to be hard to smoke. The rain
pattered on the roof; the wind moaned under the eaves; beyond the log
wall horses munched their feed; the fire sputtered. And presently Jed
Stone broke the silence.

"Men, I rode on the first Hash-Knife outfit, twenty years ago," he began.
"An' Arizona never had a finer bunch of riders. Since then I've rode in
all the outfits. Some had good men an' bad men at the same time. Thet
Texas outfit in the early eighties gave the Hash-Knife its bad name.
Daggs, Colter, an' the rest didn't live long, but their fame did. Yet
they wasn't any worse than the cattlemen and sheepmen who fought thet
war. I've never had a real honest job since."

Stone paused to take a long pull on his cigar.

"An' thet fetches me down to this day an' the Hash-Knife outfit here," he
went on. "There's a heap of difference between fact and rumour. Old Jim
Traft knows we're rustlin' his stock, but he can't prove it--yet.
Bambridge knows we are stealin' cattle, but he can't prove it because
he's crooked himself. An' same with lesser cattlemen hereabouts. If I do
say it myself, I've run this outfit pretty slick. We've got a few
thousand head of cattle wearin' our brand. Most of which we jest roped
out on the range an' branded. We knowed the mothers of these calves had
Traft's brand or some other than ours. But no posse or court can ever
prove thet onless they ketch us in the act. We're shore too old hands now
to be ketched, at least at the brandin' game. But ...an', men, here's the
hell of it, we can't go on in the old comfortable way if Traft sends thet
Diamond outfit down here. Yellow Jacket belongs to him. An' don't you
overlook this Diamond bunch if Slinger Dunn is on it. Reckon thet'll have
to be proved to me. Slinger is even more of an Indian than a backwoodsman.
I know him well. We used to hunt together. He's run a lot in the woods
with Apaches. An' no outfit would be safe while he prowled around with a
rifle. I'm tellin' you if Slinger would ambush us--shoot us from cover
like an Indian, he'd kill every damn one of us. But I'll gamble Slinger
wouldn't never do thet kind of fightin'. An' we want to bear thet in mind
if it comes to a clash between the Diamond an' the Hash-Knife."

"If," exploded Anderson, as the leader paused. "There ain't no ifs. Any
kind of reasonin' would show you thet Traft has long had in mind workin'
up this Yellow Jacket. It'll run ten thousand head, easy, an' shore will
be a fine ranch."

"Wal, then, we got to figger close. Let me make a few more points an'
then I'll put it to a vote. I wish I hadn't always done thet. For I reckon
I see clear here...We've had more'n one string to our bow these five
years. An' if we wasn't a wasteful outfit we'd all be heeled right now.
Bambridge has been playin' a high hand lately. How many thousand unbranded
calves an' yearlin's we've drove over to him I can't guess. But shore a lot.
Anyway, he's figgerin' to leave Arizona. Thet's my hunch. An' he'll
likely try to drive some big deals before he goes. If he does you can bet
he'll leave the Hash-Knife to bear the brunt. Traft has come out in the
open. He's on to Bambridge. There's no slicker cowman on the range than
Traft's man, Ring Locke. They'll put the Diamond down here, not only to
watch us, but Bambridge too. An' while we're at it let's give this young
Jim Traft the benefit of a doubt. They say he's a chip off the old block.
Wal, it'd jest be a hell of a mistake for Croak to kill thet young
feller. Old Traft would rake Arizona from the Little Colorado to the
Superstitions. It jest won't do. Slinger Dunn, yes, an' any of the rest
of the outfit. But not young Jim...Wal, I reckon it'd be wise fer us to
make one more drive, sell to Bambridge an' clear out pronto."

"My Gawd!" croaked Malloy, in utter amaze.

"Boss, do I understand you to hint you'd leave the range your Hash-Knife
has run fer twenty years?" demanded Stoneface Carr.

"Men, I read the signs of the times," replied the leader, briefly and not
without heat. "I'll put it up to you one by one...Anderson, shall we pull
up stakes fer a new range?"

"I reckon so. It ain't the way of a Hash-Knife outfit. But I advise it
fer thet very reason."

Sonora, the sheep-herder, leaned significantly and briefly to Stone's
side. But the gambler was stone cold to the plan. Malloy only croaked a
profane and scornful refusal. The others came out flat with derisive or
affronted objections.

"Wal, you needn't blow my head off," declared Stone, in like tone. "If
you do there shore won't be a hell of a lot of brains left in this
outfit...It's settled. The Hash-Knife stays until we are run out or wiped
out."



CHAPTER TWO

That same stormy night in early November, when the members of the
Hash-Knife gang had their fateful colloquy in the old log cabin on the
Yellow Jacket range, Jim Traft sat with his nephew in the spacious
living-room of the big ranch-house on the edge of Flagerstown.

It was a bright warm room, doubly cosy owing to the whine of wind outside
and the patter of sleet on the window panes. Old Traft had a fondness for
lamps with rosy globes, and the roaring fire in the great stone fireplace
attested to his years on the open range. A sleek wolf-hound lay on the
rug. Traft occupied an armchair that looked as ancient as the hills, and
he sat back with a contented smile on his fine weather-beaten face,
occasionally to puff his pipe.

"Dog-gone-it, Jim, this is somethin' like home," he said. "You look so
good to me these days. An' you've come through a Westerner...An' the old
house isn't lonesome any more."

He nodded his grey head toward the far end of the room, where Molly Dunn
curled in a big chair, her pretty golden-brown head bent over a book.
Opposite Molly on the other side of the table sat Mrs. Dunn, with eager
expectant look of enchantment, as one who wanted to keep on dreaming.

Young Jim laughed. It looked more than something like home to him, and
seldom was there a moment his eyes did not return to that brown head of
Molly Dunn.

"Shore is, Uncle," he drawled, in the lazy voice he affected on
occasions. "You wouldn't think we're only a few weeks past that bloody
fight...Gosh! when I think! ...Uncle, I've told you a hundred times how
Molly saved my life. It seems like a dream...Well, I'm back home--for
this is home, Uncle. No work for weeks! No bossing that terrible bunch
of cowboys! You so pleased with me--though for the life of me I can't
see why. Molly here for the winter to go to school--and then to be my
wife next spring...And Slinger Dunn getting well of those awful bullet
wounds so fast...It's just too good to be true."

"Ahuh. I savvy how you feel, son," replied the old rancher. "It does seem
that out here in the West the hard knocks and trials make the softer side
of life--home an' folks--an' the girl of your heart--so much dearer an'
sweeter. It ought to make you keen as a whip to beat the West--to stack
cunnin' an' nerve against the wild life of the range, an' come through
alive. I did. An', Jim, if I'd been a drinkin', roarin' cowpuncher I'd
never have lasted, an' you wouldn't be here tonight, stealin' looks at
your little Western girl."

"Oh, Uncle, that's the--the hell of it!" exclaimed Jim. "I'm crucified
when I realise. Those weeks building the drift fence were great. Such
fun--such misery! Then that fight at the cabin! Oh, Lord! I could have
torn Hack Jocelyn to pieces with my hands. Then when Molly was fighting
him for possession of his gun--hanging to him like grim death--with her
teeth, mind you--when he lifted and swung her and beat her--I was an
abject grovelling wretch, paralysed with horror...Then when Slinger
leaped past me round the cabin, as I sat there tied and helpless, and he
yelled like an Indian at Jocelyn...I thrill and shiver now, and my heart
stops...Only since I've been home do I realise what you mean about the
West. It's wonderful, it's glorious, but terrible, too."

"You've had your eye teeth cut, son," said Traft, grimly. "Now you must
face the thing--you must fight. I've fought for forty years. An' it will
still be years more before the range is free of the outlaw, the rustler,
the crooked cattleman, the thieving cowboy."

"Uncle Jim," called Molly, plaintively, "please hush up aboot the bad
West. I want to study an' I cain't help heahin'."

"Wal, wal, Molly," laughed Traft, in mild surprise, "reckon I thought you
was wrapped up in that school book."

"An', Jim--shore the West's not as wicked as Uncle makes out," went on
Molly. "He wants you to be another Curly Prentiss--or even like Slinger."

"Ha, ha!" roared the rancher, rubbing his hands. "That's funny from Molly
Dunn. My dear, if you hadn't had all the Western qualities I'm tryin' to
inspire in Jim, where would he be now?"

Even across the room Jim saw her sweet face blanch and her big dark eyes
dilate; and these evidences shot an exquisite pleasure and happiness
through him.

"Uncle, I'll answer that," he said. "I'd be in the Garden of Eden, eating
peaches."

"Maybe you would, Jim Traft," retorted Molly. "A little more bossin' the
Diamond outfit an' your chances for the Garden of Eden are shore slim."

Later, when the ladies had retired, Ring Locke came in with his quiet
step and his intent eye. Since Jim's return from the disastrous failure
of the drift fence (so he considered it, in contrast to his uncle's
opinion) and the fight at the cabin below Cottonwood, he had seemed to be
in the good graces of this Westerner, Ring Locke, a fact he hugged with
great satisfaction. Locke was a keen, strong, and efficient
superintendent of the old cattleman's vast interests.

"Some mail an' some news," he announced, handing a packet of letters to
Traft.

"How's the weather, Ring?" asked the rancher.

"Clearin', I reckon we won't see any green round Flag till spring."

"Early winter, eh? Wal, we got here first...Son, letter for you from
home--two. An' in a lady's fancy hand. You better look out Molly doesn't
see them...Ring, help yourself to a cigar an' set down."

Jim stared at the first letter. "By gosh! Gloriana has written me at
last. It's coming Christmas, the little devil...And the other from
Mother. Fine."

"Glory must be growed into quite a girl by now," remarked his uncle.

"Quite? Uncle, she's altogether," declaring Jim with force.

"Wal, I hardly remember her, 'cept as a pretty little kid with curls an'
big eyes. Favoured your mother. She shore wasn't a Traft."

Locke lit a cigar. "Some of the Hash-Knife outfit been in town," he
announced, calmly.

Jim forgot to open his letters. Old Traft bit at his cigar. "Nerve of 'em!
Who was it, Ring?"

"Madden and a greaser whose name I've forgot, if I ever knowed it. Reckon
there was another of the gang in town, but I couldn't find out who. They
bought a lot of supplies an' left Thursday. I went around to all
the stores an' saloons. Dug up what I could. It wasn't a lot,
but then again it 'pears interestin'. One in particular. Curly
Prentiss swears he saw Madden comin' out of Bambridge's, after dark
Wednesday, he says. But Curly has had a ruction with his gurl, an' he's
been drinkin', I'm sorry to say. That cowboy would be the grandest
fellar, if he didn't drink. Still, drunk or no, Curly has an eye, an' I
reckon he did see Madden."

"Funny, his comin' out of Bambridge's," growled Traft, and the bright
blue eyes narrowed.

"Awful funny," agreed Locke, in a dry tone, which acquainted the
listening Jim with the fact that the circumstance was most decidedly not
funny. "Anyway, it started me off. An' the upshot of my nosin' around was
to find out that the Hash-Knife crowd are at Yellow Jacket an' all of a
sudden oncommon interested in you an' young Jim, an' the Diamond, an'
Slinger Dunn."

"Ahuh. Wal, they'll be a heap more so by spring," replied Traft. "Funny
about Bambridge."

"The Hash-Knife have friends in Flag, you bet, an' more'n we'd ever guess.
Shore, nobody knows our business, onless the cowboys have talked. I'm
afraid Bud an' Curly have bragged. They do when they get to town an'
guzzle a bit. Madden did darn little drinkin' an' none 'cept when he was
treated. Another funny thing. He bought all the forty-five calibre shells
Babbitt's had in stock. An' a heap of the same kind, along with some
forty-fours for rifles, at Davis's. He bought hardware, too. Some new
guns. An' enough grub to feed an outfit for a year."

"Winter supplies, I reckon. An' mebbe the Hash-Knife are in for another
war, like the one it started in eighty-two. Ha, ha! ...But it ain't so
funny, after all."

"It shore doesn't look like peaceful ranchin'," drawled Locke.

"Damn these low-down outfits, anyway," growled the rancher. "I fought
them when I rode the range years ago, an' now I'm fightin' them still.
Locke, we'll be runnin' eighty thousand head of stock in a year or two."

"Eighty thousand!--Then you can afford to lose some," replied Locke.

"Humph. I couldn't lose a calf's ear to those thievin' outfits without
gettin' sore. They've kept me poor."

"Uncle, we appear to have the necessities of life around the ranch. Nice
warm fires, and some luxury," remarked Jim, humorously.

"Just you wait," retorted his uncle. "Just you wait! You'll be a darn
sight worse than me, pronto."

"Locke, who is this Madden?" asked Jim, quietly, with change of tone.

"One of Jed Stone's gang. Hard ridin', hard drinkin' and shootin' hombre.
Come up from the border a few years ago. The murder of Wilson, a rancher
out of Holbrook, was laid to Madden. But that was only suspicion. In this
country you have to catch a man at anythin' to prove it. Personally,
though, I'd take a shot at Madden an' ask questions afterward."

"Tough outfit, Uncle tells me," went on Jim, reflectively.

"Boy, the Cibeque was a summer zephyr to thet Hash-Knife outfit. Stone
used to be a square-shootin' cowboy. Rode fer your uncle once. That was
before my day here. He's outlawed now, with crimes on his head. An
intelligent, dangerous man. He's got a Texas gun-fighter in his outfit.
Pecos something or other, an' I reckon he's 'most as bad as any of the
killers out of Texas. Croak Malloy, though, is Stone's worst an' meanest
hand. Then, there's Lang an' Anderson, who've been with him for years."

"Is Slinger Dunn the equal of any of these men?" queried Jim.

"Equal? I reckon. Yes, he's ahaid of them in some ways," replied Locke,
thoughtfully. "Slinger could beat any one of them to a gun, unless mebbe
this Pecos feller. But Slinger is young an' he has no crimes on his haid.
That makes a difference. None of this Hash-Knife outfit could be
arrested. They hang together an' you bet they'll die with their boots
on."

"Then we're in for another fight?" mused Jim, and though he sustained a
wonderful thrill--cold as a chill--he did not like the prospect.

"Traft," said Locke, turning to the rancher, "strikes me queer that Stone
hangs on in this part of Arizona. He's no fool. He shore knows he can't
last for ever. If the Diamond doesn't drive him out it'll break up his
outfit. An' other riders will keep on his track."

"Wal, you know, Stone will never be run out of anywhere. But he's an
Arizonian, an' this range is home, even if it has outlawed him. He's
bitter an' hard, which is natural enough. Stone ought to be a rich
cattleman now. I--I feel sorry for him, an' that's why I've let Yellow
Jacket alone."

Jim thought his uncle spoke rather feelingly.

"Wouldn't it be better to drive off what stock's left there an' let the
land go?" went on Locke.

"Better? Humph! It can't be done. We've got to organise against these
rustlin' outlaws or they'll grow bolder an' ruin us. Take that case over
in New Mexico when a big cattleman--crooked of course--hired Billy the
Kid an' his outfit to steal cattle, an' he sold them to the Government.
That deal lasted for years. Everybody knew it, except the Government
officials. Wal, I'm inclined to think there's some ranchin' man backing'
Stone."

"Ahuh. I know how you incline, Traft," returned Locke, dryly. "An' it's
likely to get us into trouble."

"Wal, if Bambridge is buyin' in our stock we ought to find it out," said
Traft, testily.

"Suppose your suspicions reach Bambridge's ear? He might be honest. In
any case he's liable to shoot you. An' I say this Yellow Jacket isn't
worth the risk."

"Ring, I don't like the man. I suspect him. We've clashed from the first.
He was hoppin' mad when he found out I owned Yellow Jacket an' had the
range rights there. It'll be interestin' to see what move he makes."

"Like watchin' a game of checkers," rejoined Locke, with a laugh. "All
right, boss. I'm bound to admit you've made some sharp guesses in my days
with you. Reckon I'll go to bed. Good-night."

In the silence that succeeded after he had gone, Jim slowly opened the
letters he had been idly holding.

"Uncle, I'm afraid Locke is against this Yellow Jacket deal, especially
the Bambridge angle."

"Locke is cautious. He hates this sort of thing as much as I do. But what
can we do? I take it as my duty to rid Arizona of this particular
outfit, an' I'm goin' to do it."

"Then it isn't a personal grudge against Bambridge?"

"Not at all. I shore hope we find out my suspicions are wrong. An'
I'm relyin' on your Slinger Dunn to find out. He's the man we need,
Jim. I shore appreciate your gettin' hold of him."

Jim spread out one of the letters on his knee and read it.

"Good heavens!" he ejaculated, blankly. "Son, I hope you've no bad
news. Who's the letter from?"

"Mother," replied Jim, still blankly.

"Wal?"

"Uncle, what do you think? Mother is sending my sister, Gloriana,
out here to stay with us a while...Doctor's orders. Says Gloriana
has a weak lung and must live a year or more in a high dry climate...By
gosh! Glory is on her way right now!"

"Wal, wal! I'm shore sorry, Jim. But Arizona will cure her."

"Cure!...Cure nothing!" snorted Jim. "Gloriana has no more lung
trouble than I have. She's the healthiest girl alive. It's just a trick
to get her out here."

"Wal, I reckon there ain't no need of tricks. We'll be darn glad to have
her, won't we?"

"Uncle, you don't understand," replied Jim, in despair.

"Tell me, then."

"Gloriana will upset the ranch, and break the Diamond and drive me
crazy."

"Haw, haw, haw!"

"It's no laughing matter."

"But, Jim, you've been away from home 'most a year. Your sister could
have failed in health in much less time."

"That's so...Oh, I hope not...Of course, Uncle, I'll be glad to
have her, if she's really sick. But..."

"Son, don't you care for this little sister?"

"Gosh, Uncle, I love her! That's the worst of it. I can't help
but love her. Everybody loves her, in spite of the fact she's a perfect
devil."

"Humph! How old is Gloriana?"

"She's eighteen. No, nearly nineteen."

"Wal, the Trafts were all good-lookin'. How does she stack up?"

"Glory is the prettiest girl you ever saw in all your life."

"Shore then it'll be fine to have her," replied the rancher. "An' I'll
tell you what, Jim. When we once get her out heah we'll keep her."

"What?" queried Jim, weakly.

"We'll never let her go back again. We'll marry her to some fine
Westerner."

Jim felt his turn to laugh. "Ha, ha, ha! ...Uncle, there's not enough men
in Arizona to marry Glory. And I'm afraid not one she'd wipe her feet
on."

"Sort of stuck up, eh? Thet ain't a Traft trait."

"I wouldn't say she was stuck up. But she's certainly no plain everyday
Traft, like you and I, or Dad or Mother. She's not conceited, either.
Glory is a puzzle. She changes each moon. I wonder what she's like
now...Jerusalem! Suppose she doesn't take to Molly!"

"See heah, young man," spoke up Traft, gruffly. "Mebbe it'll be the other
way round. Molly mightn't take to her."

"Molly? Why, Uncle, that adorable child would love anybody, if she had
half a chance."

"Ahuh. Wal, that accounts fer her lovin' you...Jim, it'll work out all
right. Remember your first tenderfoot days. Would you go back East now to
live?"

"Gosh, no!"

"Wal, the West will do the same for Gloriana, if she has any red blood.
It'll go tough, until she's broke in. An' if she's a high-steppin'
Easterner, it'll be all the tougher. But she must have real stuff in her.
She's a Traft, for all you say."

"Gloriana May takes after Mother's side of the family, and some of them
are awful."

"She's got to have some Traft in her. An' we'll gamble on that. For my
part, I'm glad she's comin'. I hope she burns up the ranch. I've been so
long without fun and excitement and devilry around heah that I could
stand a heap."

"Uncle Jim, you're going to get your desire," exploded Jim, dramatically.
"You'll see these cowboys walk Spanish and perform like tame bears with
rings in their noses. You'll see the work on the ranch go to smash. The
round-ups will be a circus. As for dances--holy smoke! every one of them
will be a war!"

"Wal, I'll be gol-darned if I wouldn't like the girl all the more,"
declared Traft, stoutly. "These cowpunchers make me awful sick with their
love affairs. Any girl will upset them. An' if Glory is all you say my
Gawd, but I'll enjoy it!...Goodnight, son."

Jim slid down in his chair and eyed the fire. "Gosh! It's a good bet
Uncle Jim will be apple-pie for Glory. But if she really loves him, why,
I reckon, I'll be glad. And I might get along with her, in a pinch--But
there's Molly...Heigho! I'd better dig into Glory's letter."

He held it to the dying glow of the fire and read:

DEAR BROTHER JIM,

"Don't let Mother's letter worry you. I'm not very sick. I've planned to
start west the day after I mail this letter, so you won't have time to
wire me not to come. I'm just crazy about the West. Your letters have
done it, Jim. I've devoured them. Dad is so proud of you he almost busts.
But Mother thinks it's terrible. I'm sorry to spring this on you so
sudden. I hope you will be glad to see me. It seems ages since you left.
You'll never know your Gloriana May. Expect me on the Western Special,
November 7th, and meet me with a bunch of cowboys, a string of horses,
and one of those tally-ho things you call a chuck-wagon. I'm starved
to death.

"Love.

"GLORIANA."

Jim read the letter twice and then stared into the fire. "Sounds like
Glory, yet somehow it doesn't...I wonder if she is really ill...Or in any
kind of trouble...It was Glory's affairs with boys that stuck in my
craw...Well. November the seventh. By jinks! it's Monday! What shall I
say to Molly?"

The difficulty, it seemed to Jim, would be serious. Glory was bright and
clever. She had graduated from high school at seventeen. She could do
'most anything well, and had a genius for designing and making modish
dresses and bonnets. Molly, on the other hand, was a shy little
wood-mouse. She had never had any advantages. Two years at a backwoods
school had been all the opportunity for education that had ever come to
her. She was exceedingly sensitive about her lack of knowledge and
her crudeness. The situation would be a delicate one, for Molly, in her
way, was quite as proud as Gloriana was in hers.

"I'll trust to Molly's generous heart and the western bigness of her,"
soliloquised Jim. "In the end Glory will love her. That I'll gamble on."



CHAPTER THREE

Next morning as they went out to breakfast, Jim hugged Molly
disgracefully in the dark, cold corridor. When Molly escaped into the
dining-room a less keen eye than that of the old rancher, who stood back
to the blazing-fire, could have made amusing deductions.

"Mawnin', Uncle Jim. I--I been chased by a bear," laughed Molly.

"Good mornin', lass. Shore I seen thet...Howdy, son! What do you think of
Arizona weather?"

"Terrible. And you're sending me to camp out after Thanksgiving!"
protested Jim. It seemed to him there was going to be good reason for him
to stay in Flagerstown.

"Wal. Yellow Jacket is five or six thousand feet lower, an' if it snows
it melts right off. Molly can vouch for thet. An' the valley of the
Cibeque is higher than Yellow Jacket."

"I've seen snow every winter I can remember, most up on the Diamond. Down
at my home it never lasted a day," replied Molly.

"That's some consolation."

"Jim, I think it's grand. I shore hope you won't go back on your
promise," said Molly.

"What promise?"

"Aboot takin' me to town in a sleigh, with bells ringin'. An' snowballin'
me. Oh! I'm shore I'll love this winter."

"Yes, I'll keep my praise, and I bet you beg for mercy."

Jim made good his promise, and when he had Molly bundled in the sleigh
beside him, her cheeks like roses and her dark curls flying, he was as
proud as she was delighted. Much to his satisfaction, all the young
people of Flagerstown appeared to be out sleigh-riding also; and many a
girl who had made Jim uncomfortable when he was a tenderfoot saw him now
with Molly.

Jim drove around to the barn, having in mind the latter half of his
promise to Molly, which surely she had forgotten. As they went by the big
bunk-house Bud Chalfack poked his ruddy cherub face out of the door and
yelled, "Hey, boss, thet ain't fair." Jim yelled back, "Get yourself a
girl, you cowboy."

At the barn he handed the reins to a Mexican stable boy, and helped Molly
out. Then he led her into the lane toward the ranchhouse. She was
paddling along beside him through the deep snow and babbling merrily.
When fully out of sight of the hawk-eyed cowboys Jim snatched up a big
handful of snow, and seizing Molly he washed her rosy face with it.

"Jim Traft--you--you--" she sputtered, as he let her go. Then before she
could recover her sight and breath he snatched up a double handful of
snow and pitched that at her. His aim was true. It burst all over her in
a white shower. She screamed, and bending quickly she squeezed a tight
little snowball and threw it at Jim. He managed to save his eye, but it
struck him on the head. Molly, it appeared, was no mean antagonist. Then
fast and furious came the little snowballs. Never a one missed!

"Hey, you said--you'd never had a snowball fight," he panted.

"Shore never had. But I can lick you, Missouri," she replied, her high
gay laugh pealing out.

Jim realised that she would make good her word unless he carried the
battle to close range. Wherefore he rushed her, getting a snowball square
on the nose for his pains. She dodged.

"Aw, Jim--stand up--an' fight square," she squealed.

But he caught her, tumbled her into the snow, rolled her over and over,
and finally swept a great armful upon her. Then he ran for dear life,
tinglingly aware the snowy cyclone at his heels.

Later Jim emerged from concealment and walked down to the bunk-house. He
had not seen the boys for several days. He stamped on the porch.

"Hey; don't pack no snow in hyar," yelled a voice. "I gotta do the
sweepin' fer this outfit."

Jim opened the door and went in. The big room was cheerful with its
crackling fire, and amazingly clean, considering it harboured the hardest
cowboy outfit in Arizona.

"Howdy, boys!" he sang out.

"You needn't come an' crow over us," answered Bud. "Sleigh-ridin' with
Molly Dunn!"

Jackson Way looked askance at Jim's snowy boots, his lean young face
puckered and resentful. "Boss, I reckon you had this snow come on
purpose."

Hump Stevens spoke from his bunk, where he lay propped up, cheerful and
smiling.

"How are you, Hump?"

"Rarin' to go, Boss. I been walkin' around this mornin'. An' I won all
the money the boys had."

"Good work," said Jim, and turning to Uphill Frost, who sat before the
fire in a rocking-chair, with a crutch significantly at hand. "And you,
Up?"

"Boss, I ain't so damn good, far as disposition goes. But I could fork a
horse if I had to."

"Great! Where's Cherry and Lonestar?" went on Jim.

"They hoofed it in town to see Slinger," replied Frost.

"I haven't been to the hospital for three days," said Jim. "How's Slinger
coming around?"

"He was up, walkin' around, cussin' Doc fer not lettin' him smoke all he
wants. Reckon time hangs heavy on Slinger. He can't read much, an' he
says he wants to get back in the woods. Asked why you didn't come to see
him. Didn't he, Bud?"

"Sure. Slinger complained like hell of your neglect, Boss. I seen him
yestiddy. An' I told him thet no one never seen you no more. Then he
cussed Molly fer not fetchin' you."

"I'm sorry. I'll see him tomorrow," replied Jim, contritely.

Curly Prentiss, the handsome blond young giant of the Diamond outfit, sat
at a table, writing with absorbed violence. He alone had not appeared to
note Jim's entrance.

"Curly, I've news for you."

But Curly gave no sign that he heard, whereupon Jim addressed Bud. "What
ails Curly?"

"Same old sickness, Boss. I've seen Curly doubled up with that fer five
years, about every few months. Mebbe it's a little wuss than usual, fer
his girl chucked him an' married Wess Stebbins."

"No!"

"Sure's a fack. They run off to Winslow. You see, Curly come the high an'
mighty once too often. Caroline bucked. An' they had it hot an' heavy.
Curly told her to go where it was hot--so she says--an' he marched off
with his haid up...Wal, Carrie took him at his word. Thet is--he'd
unhooked her bridle. Wess always was loony over her, an' she married him,
which we all reckon was a darned good thing. Now Curly is writin' his
funeral letter, after which he aims to get turrible drunk."

"Curly," spoke up Jim, kindly.

"Cain't you leave me alone heah?" appealed the cowboy.

"Yes, in a minute. Sorry to disturb you, old man. But I've news about
Yellow Jacket, Jed Stone, and his Hash-Knife outfit."

"To hell with them! I'm a ruined cowboy. Soon as I get this document
written I'm goin' to town an' look at red licker."

"Nope," said Jim, laconically.

"Wal, I jest am. Who says I cain't?"

"I do, Curly."

"But you're not my boss. I've quit the Diamond. I'll never fork a hoss
again."

"Curly, you wouldn't let us tackle that Hash-Knife gang without you?"

"Jim, I cain't care aboot nothin'. My heart's broke. I could see you all
shot. I could see Bud Chalfack hung on a tree an' laugh."

"Curly, didn't you and I get to be good friends?"

"Shore. An' I was durn proud of it. But friendship's nuthin' to love. Aw,
Boss, I'm ashamed to face you with it...Caroline has turned out to be
false. Chucked me fer thet bowlegged Stebbins puncher! Who'd ever thought
I'd come to sech disgrace?"

"Curly, it's no disgrace. Wess is a good chap. He'll make Caroline happy.
You didn't really love her."

"Wha-at!" roared Curly. And when his hearers all greeted this with a
laugh he sank back crestfallen.

"Curly, there's some good reasons why you can't throw down the Diamond at
this stage," said Jim, seriously, and placed a kindly hand on the
cowboy's shoulder.

"Jest you give me one, Jim Traft," blustered Curly, and he laid down his
pencil.

Jim knew perfectly well that this wonderful young Westerner could not be
untrue to anyone. "First, then, Curly. You've already got a few head of
stock on the range. In a few years you'll be a rancher on your own
account."

"No reason at all. I don't want thet stock. I'd have given it to Bud if
he hadn't been so nasty aboot Caroline. Swore she'd finally come to her
senses. Then I gave the cattle to Hump, heah."

"Well, Hump can give them back...Another reason is Uncle Jim is throwing
us plumb against the Hash-Knife outfit. Now what would the Diamond amount
to without Curly Prentiss?"

"I don't give a--a damn," rejoined Curly. But it was a weak assertion.

"See there, Boss," yelled Bud, red in the face. "He hates us all jest
because thet red-headed Carrie Bambridge chucked him."

"Curly, it's just as well," went on Jim. "Listen, and all of you. This is
a secret and not to be spoken of except among ourselves. Uncle Jim is
sure Bambridge is crooked. Making deals with the Hash-Knife."

All the cowboys except Curly expressed themselves in different degrees of
exclamation.

At length Curly spoke. "Even if Bainbridge was crooked--that'd make no
difference to me."

"Did you ask Caroline to marry you?" queried Jim, kindly.

"Dog-gone-it, no," replied Curly, and here his fine, frank face flamed.
"Boss, I never was sure I cared that much, till I lost her."

"Curly, it wasn't the real thing--your case on Caroline."

"Ahuh. Jim, you haven't given me any argument why I shouldn't go out an'
drown my grief in the bottle--an' shoot up the town--an' kill somebody or
get put in jail."

"No? All right. Here's another reason," replied Jim, and he drew a
photograph out of his pocket and laid it on the table in front of Curly.

The cowboy started, bent over, and became absorbed in the picture.

Bud Chalfack started, too, but Jim waved him back.

"My Gawd! Boss, who is this?" asked Curly.

"My sister, Gloriana May Traft."

"Your sister?--Jim, I shore ought to have seen the resemblance, though
she's ten million times better-lookin' than you...But how is she a reason
for my not goin' to the bad?"

"Curly, it's as simple as pie," said Jim. "Gloriana is a sick girl. She's
coming West for her health. She'll arrive on Monday, on the Western
Special. Now, I ask you, have you the heart to bust up the Diamond--to
get drunk and worry me to death--when I've got this new trouble on my
hands?"

Curly took another long look at the photograph, and then he turned to Jim
with all the clouds vanished from his eyes and face. To see Curly thus
was to love him.

"Boss, I haven't got the heart to throw you down," he replied. "It's my
great weakness--this heah heart of mine...I reckon I wasn't goin'
to--anyhow...An' I'll go down to meet the Western Special with you."

Jim, if he had dared, could have yelled his mirth. How well he had known
Curly.

"Lemme see thet pictoor?" demanded Bud, advancing.

Curly handed the photograph back to Jim, and said, blandly, "Bud, gulls
of high degree shouldn't interest you."

"Boys, I want you all to see Glory's picture," said Jim, calmly, though
he revelled in the moment. "Come, take a look."

Bud and Jackson Way leaped forward; Uphill Frost forgot his crutch, Hump
Stevens hopped out of his bunk; and they all, with Curly irresistibly
drawn, crowded around Jim.

The long silence that ensued attested to the beauty of Gloriana Traft.

Finally Bud exploded: "Lord! ain't she a looker?"

"Prettier even than Molly Dunn," added Way, as if that was the
consummation of all beauty.

"I never seen no angel till this minnit," was Uphill Frost's encomium.

"Ef I jest wasn't a crippled cowpuncher an' had a million dollars!"
exclaimed Hump Stevens, with a sigh. "Boss, her name fits her."

Curly Prentiss reacted peculiarly to all this. It seemed he resented
the looks and sighs and fervid comments of his comrades, as if they
had profaned a sacred face already enshrined in his impressionable heart.

"Wal, I'm informin' you gentlemen of the range thet I saw her first," he
said, loftily.

Bud took that as an insult. Frost swore his surprise. Hump Stevens stared
in silence. Jackson Way laughed at the superb and conceited cowboy. Then
Curly addressed Jim. "Boss, it's shore plain the Diamond will be busted
now."



CHAPTER FOUR

Jim did not see much of Molly on Sunday. She kept to her room except at
meal hours. He found opportunity however, to ask her to go into town with
him on Monday to meet his sister.

"I'd rather not, Jim," she replied, as if her mind had long been made up.
"She'd rather you didn't fetch any girl, especially your girl, to meet
her, thet's shore."

"But why, Molly?" he queried.

"It'll be a surprise to her--the way things are with you an' me. An' it
oughtn't come the minute she gets heah."

"We don't need to tell her right away."

"She'd see it...Jim, you should have written home weeks ago--to tell your
folks aboot me."

"I suppose I ought. Really I meant to. Only I just didn't write."

"Wal, I reckon it'd be better not to let her know right away. I could
hide it. But I'm shore afraid you couldn't. Uncle Jim will blurt it out."

"Molly! The idea--not telling Gloriana we're engaged," he protested,
mystified by her gravity.

"Jim, it'll be all right if only she takes to me, but if she's like you
when you first struck Flag--she won't."

"I was pretty much of a snob," he admitted. "Molly, I'm the better for
all I've gone through...You realise, don't you, how much I--"

The entrance of Molly's mother prohibited the rest of that tender speech.
And Jim presently left the living-room perturbed in mind. He could not
rid himself of a premonition that Gloriana's coming heralded disaster. No
further opportunity to speak privately to Molly presented itself that
day; and early Monday morning Molly trudged off to school like any
country girl, wading through the snow. How serious she was about her
studies!

In the afternoon Jim sent for Curly Prentiss, who appeared as if by
magic, most gorgeously arrayed in the gayest and finest of cowboy
habiliments.

"For goodness' sake? Why this togging up?" exclaimed Jim.

Curly appeared to be labouring under stress.

"Had hell with the outfit," he said. "Come near punchin' Bud. He swore I
ought to wear a plain suit--which is somethin' I don't own--but I'm no
business man, or even a rancher yet. An' I want to look what I am."

"Oh, you mean you want my sister Gloriana to see you're a real cowboy?"

"Shore do."

"Big hat, gun, spurs, and all?"

"I reckon."

"Well, Curly, she'll see you all right. She could see you a mile away."

"Jim, don't you give me any of your chin aboot how I look. I had enough
from Bud an' Jack an' Uphill. An' my feelin's are hurt...They're goin' to
meet thet train, all of them except Hump. He wanted us to carry him on a
stretcher. Up is goin' on a crutch--the damn fool!"

"Fine. The sooner you all see Gloriana May the sooner you'll be
miserable...I've ordered the buckboard to meet the train. Let's walk in,
Curly, and stop to see Slinger."

"It's a good idea. A little movin' around might steady me. I'd shore hate
to meet Jed Stone or thet Pecos gun-thrower."

Their long steps soon brought them to the edge of town and eventually the
modest hospital, which, unpretentious as it was, had become the boast of
cowboys.

They found Slinger Dunn the only inmate, besides an attendant or two, and
he was limping up and down a warm and comfortable room. His dark face,
bronze and smooth like an Indian's wreathed into a smile at sight of his
visitors. He had gained since Jim had last seen him. His long hair, black
as the wing of a crow, hung down over the collar of the loose woollen
dressing-gown he wore, in which obviously he felt ill at ease. Jim always
thrilled at sight of Slinger, and had reason to do so, beyond
appreciation of his striking figure and piercing eyes. Anyone who had
ever seen Molly Dunn would at once connect Slinger with her.

"Howdy, boys! It's aboot time you was comin'," he drawled. "Molly came in
on her way to school, or I'd shore be daid now."

"Patience, Slinger. Why, you've made a marvellous recovery!" said Jim,
cheerily.

"Slinger, you backwoods son-of-a-gun, only five weeks ago you was a sieve
of bullet holes," declared Curly. "An' heah you can walk aboot."

"Wal, it's easy fer you fellars to talk, but I'd like to see you stand
stayin' heah. Day after day--night after night. Thet damn Doc won't give
me any more cigarettes an' only a nip of whisky. Set down, boys, an' tell
me some news."

"Slinger, just as soon as you can ride we're off for Yellow Jacket,"
announced Jim.

"Wal, pack up fer tomorrow mawnin'."

"Not till after Thanksgiving. Three weeks yet. And now listen." Whereupon
Jim related all the late news and rumours about the Hash-Knife outfit.

"Shore, I'd expect thet of Jed Stone," said Dunn. "An', Boss, if you want
to know, I've long had a hunch Bambridge is back of the Hash-Knife."

"No!" ejaculated Jim, aghast at so definite a statement from this
backwoodsman.

"Slinger, we reckon you mean Bambridge ain't above buyin' a few haid of
stock from Stone now an' then?" queried Curly, slow and cool, but his
blue eyes flashed fire.

"Hell no! Buyin' a few steers nuthin'," drawled Dunn, forcibly.
"Bambridge's outlayin' ranch is across the divide from Yellow Jacket.
Thirty miles around by road. But by the canyon--Doubtful we call it
--there's less'n ten miles. An' Bambridge is gettin' stock through
Doubtful an' drivin' it to Maricopa."

Curly whistled his amazement. Jim simply stared. This was getting down to
hard pan. It did not occur to either of them to question Slinger Dunn.

"Shore, I can't prove it, Jim," he continued. "But it's what I reckon. An
my hunch is fer us to keep our traps shet--an' go down to Yellow Jacket
to make shore."

"Right, you bet," agreed Curly. "But if it's true, the Hash-Knife will
stop operations until either they or the Diamond are settled."

"We've got to find out," interposed Jim emphatically. "Ring Locke advised
against Uncle sending the Diamond on that job. Said we could do easier
and more important work. He's afraid Bambridge might shoot Uncle."

"Wal, there's shore risk of thet," rejoined Dunn. "But Traft could keep
out of the way. When we get the trick on these fellars we can do a little
shootin' ourselves...You know, Boss, there ain't no other way oot of it."

"So Uncle says," assented Jim, gloomily. "Slinger, you don't think it'll
be another Pleasant Valley War?"

"Lord, no," declared Dunn, showing his white teeth. "Thet war hed
hundreds of sheepmen an' cattlemen behind it, with rustlers on the side
of the sheep fellars. This heah deal is a matter of a little gunplay."

"Slinger, you've got a lot of time to think it over," said Jim. "Do so,
and I'll come in after a few days. I'm a little upset just now. My sister
is coming today. She's ill. They say the climate will agree with her."

"Thet's too bad, Boss. But mebbe it'll all turn oot right...Molly never
told me you hed a sister. I reckon I know how you feel."

"Here's her picture, Slinger," said Jim, producing the photograph and
handing it over.

"Wal, I never before seen any girl or a pictoor of one thet could beat
Molly. But this heah shore does."

"Molly is totally unlike Gloriana. Just as pretty in her way, I think,"
he said, stoutly.

"Boss, you're loco. Molly is a slick, soft, pretty little woodmouse. But
this sister of yourn is like the sun in the mawnin'."

Jim felt a surprise he did not betray. The compliment to Gloriana at
Molly's expense did not find great favour with Jim. Receiving the picture
back, he took a look at it, somehow seeing Glory differently, and then he
returned it to his pocket.

"It was taken a year ago," he explained. "And if Gloriana has improved in
looks since I've been gone as much as she did the year before--whew! but
she'll be something to look at. I hardly expect improvement, though,
since she has been ill."

"Huh! Thet gurl couldn't be ailin'," returned Dunn, positively.

Conversation reverted to other channels then--the Diamond, the
incompleted drift fence, winter, horses--until finally Jim rose to go,
with Curly following suit.

"Slinger, I'm awful glad you're doing so well," said Jim.

"Wal, you fellars have cheered me right pert. Come again soon...An', Jim,
would you mind lettin' me borrow thet pictoor fer a spell? I get hells
rattlin' lonesome--an' it'd be good to look at."

"Why, certainly, Slinger," declared Jim, hastily producing it. "I'm sure
Glory will be flattered."

"Thanks, Boss," drawled Slinger. "Your havin' a sister too, kinda makes
us closer, huh? Wal, adios."

For a cowboy who had been born on a horse and who had spent most of his
life in a saddle, Curly Prentiss could certainly walk. He might have had
on seven-league boots. In quick time they arrived at the station, to find
Zeb there with the buckboard; but Jackson, Lonestar Holliday, Cherry
Winters, and Uphill in a state of vast excitement, that seemed strange in
their plain business suits, at least three of which were brand new.

The Western Special roared into the station, all ice and snow, with the
steam hissing and the smoke obscuring the platform lights. It was almost
dark. When the engine and mail and baggage cars passed the air cleared,
and the bright lights shone again. In his excitement Jim quite forgot his
comrades. The second coach stopped opposite his position and he was all
eyes. A porter began sliding bags and suit-cases off the step. Then a
slim form emerged from the car upon the vestibule. The furs proclaimed it
feminine. But there was too much shadow. Then she stepped down and paused
in the bright light. It was Gloriana, Jim said to himself, conscious of
inward tumult. The tall slim shape, with its air of distinction, the cut
of the long fur coat, the set of the stylish little hat, would have been
enough. But Jim stared a moment longer, Gloriana's face shone like a
white flower out of the black furs, and her great eyes, dark in that
light, strained eagerly to and fro, and then fixed on him.

"Jim!" she cried in rapture. When had she ever called to him with a voice
like that? He ran to the steps and lifted her down in a bearish hug. She
did not appear as substantial and heavy as he remembered his sister.

"Glory!--Dog-gone, I'm glad to see you!" he said, and certainly returned
the warm kiss she gave him, which struck him as even more unusual than
the poignant tone of her voice. Something had changed Jim Traft's value
in the eyes of his sister.

"Jim, you can't be--half as glad--as I am to see--you," she panted,
gaily, clinging to him. "Is this the--North Pole? Who are these young
men?...Jim, I thought Arizona was desert--sunny, hot--all golden ranges
and pine trees."

"Hey, boys, grab the bags," ordered Jim, with a laugh. "Fetch them into
the waiting-room." Then he led Gloriana into the station, where it was
light and warm. "The rig will be here in a minute...Gosh!...I just don't
know you, Glory. Your eyes, maybe."

"No one, not even a brother, would ever have been likely to forget
Gloriana May's eyes. At this moment they were travelling over Jim,
brilliant with amaze.

"I know you and I don't. You great big handsome man. Oh, Jim, you're so
wonderfully different. Arizona has improved you...I'll bet you've fallen
in love with some Western cow-girl."

Jim should have said she had guessed right the very first time, and he
would have done so, but for the something familiar and disconcerting that
was merely Gloriana. Then the cowboys came bustling in with bags and
suit-cases. Even Uphill carried one with an air of importance. Curly
disengaged himself from the excited group and strode forward. Sight of
him filled Jim with glee, and a quick glance at Glory took in her eyes,
fixed and beautiful. Now it was a natural function of Glory's eyes, even
in her most casual glance, to shine and glow and give illusion of a
thousand thoughts that were not in her head at all. They were so alive,
so speaking, so eloquent, so treacherously lovely, that Jim sustained a
second thrill at sight of them.

"A cowboy!" she whispered. "Jim, I believe you now."

It probably was a magnificent moment for Curly, but he did not betray
that in the least.

"Boss, Zeb is heah with the buckboard," he announced in his cool, lazy
way.

"Gloriana, this is Curly Prentiss, one of my cowboys--and quite a
cattleman in his own right," introduced Jim. "Curly--my sister."

Curly doffed his sombrero and made a gallant bow that, though easy and
slow like his voice, was as singularly pleasing.

"Miss Traft, I shore am glad to meet you-all," he said.

"How do you do, Mr. Prentiss. I'm pleased to meet you," she replied, with
a dazzling smile. "You are my very first cowboy."

Gloriana May probably did not mean she had taken possession of Curly at
first sight, but Jim saw that this identical circumstance had come to
pass.

"Wal," drawled Curly, not in the least knocked off his balance, "I'm
shore happy to be the first an' I'll see to it I'm the last."

"Oh," laughed Glory, merrily, and turned to Jim with her first
appreciation of a cowboy.

The other boys lined up, with Uphill Frost hanging a little behind to
hide his crutch. They presented a bright-eyed, shiny-faced coterie, at
the moment devoid of any trace of devilment or horns and hoofs.

"Boys, this is my sister, Gloriana," announced Jim. "Glory, meet the rest
of the Diamond, except two that are laid up for repairs...Bud Chalfack."

Bud took a step out and his smile was cherubic. "Miss Gloriana, I reckon
there ain't no one any gladder to welcome you to Arizonie."

"Thank you, Mr. Chalfack. I'm happy to meet you," replied Gloriana.

"And this is Lonestar Holliday," went on Jim. Lonestar in his eager
confusion stepped on Bud's foot and could not find words to answer
Glory's bright acknowledgement.

"And Jackson Way...and Cherry Winters...and Uphill Frost...There, Glory,
you've made the acquaintance of most of the Diamond, which, according to
Uncle Jim, is the most terrible cowboy outfit in Arizona."

"Oh, I'm sure Uncle Jim is wrong," said Gloriana, sweetly.

"They look very nice and mild to me--except Mr. Prentiss--who is quite
terrifying with his gun and those awful spurs."

Somehow Jim got the impression from Glory's speaking eyes that she meant
Curly's handsome presence was something calculated to stop the heart of a
girl fresh from the East.

Bud looked disgustedly at Curly, as if to say he had gone and done it
again. If there was anything a cowboy hated it was to be thought nice and
mild.

"Miss Glory," he spoke up, most winningly, and Jim made certain that the
next time Bud addressed her it would be Glory minus the prefix, "there's
some cowpunchers who pack hard-ware all the time an' sleep in their
spurs. But they ain't the dangerous kind."

Thus Jim saw with delight a new species of men and life dawn upon his
bewildered sister. Likewise he perceived with fiendish glee that he was
going to get even with the Diamond.

"Carry the baggage out, boys," he said. "We'll go home to the
ranch...Curly, you can ride with us, so in case we meet any desperadoes
or Indians they won't get Glory."



CHAPTER FIVE

On the way out Jim did not say anything to Glory about the room he had
fixed up for her. In fact, he did not have much chance to talk, for Glory
addressed her curiosity to Curly. Jim drove fast, so the wind would
pierce through his sister, furs and all. It did.

"F-f-fine f-for a g-girl with o-one lung," chattered Gloriana as Jim
lifted her out of the buckboard. "G-good-n-night--Mr. Curly. If I
don't--f-f-freeze to death I'll see you--to-tomorrow."

"I shore pray for a moderation of temperature," replied Curly, gallantly.
"Goodnight, Miss Traft."

"Set the bags on the porch," said Jim, "and hurry those horses into the
barn...Glory, I reckon you'll want to get warm before you see Uncle Jim."

Gloriana stood in the cold starlight, looking out at the spectral pine
forest and the pure white peaks that notched the sky. "W-w-wonderful!"

Jim almost carried her to her room, which was in the west end of the
rambling ranch-house. When he opened the door a blaze of light and warmth
and colour greeted Gloriana's eyes. Jim had spent a whole day on making
this room different from any Glory had ever seen, and one that would be
livable, even for a sick girl in zero weather. It had an open fireplace
where logs were snapping and blazing; Navajo rugs covered the floor;
Indian ornaments of bead, basket, and silver work hung on the walls; a
fine elk head, with massive horns, stood out over the mantel; the bed had
a coverlet of deep, woolly, soft red, most inviting to the eye. Even the
lamp had a shade painted with Indian designs.

Gloriana gasped with delight, threw off her furs and hat, and rushed to
the fire, where she stretched her gloved hands.

"Pretty nifty, huh?" asked Jim.

"Just lovely. But wait a minute until I can see."

Jim went out to fetch in the luggage. He had to make three trips to the
porch and back. "Glory, from the looks of this you've come to stay
awhile."

"I've three trunks, too," rejoined Gloriana.

"Is that all? Gee! I didn't figure on trunks when I worked over this
room. But there's a big closet...Turn round, Glory, so I can look at
you."

"Well, how do I look?" she asked soberly.

"Prettier than ever, Glory, only different. I can't figure it yet," said
Jim.

"Thanks. I didn't hope for compliment...Jim, you've been away almost a
year."

"So long? Gee! time flies. Well sister, it has been a terrible and a
wonderful year for me. I've sure got a story to tell you. But that can
wait. Sit down. You look fagged. And tell me about yourself. Mother's
letter scared me."

"Jim, you're my last bet," she said frankly.

"Glory!...I don't understand," exclaimed Jim, blankly. "You were a belle
when I left home. You had so many friends that I never saw you. Then all
that money Aunt Mary left you...And now I'm your last bet!"

"Funny, isn't it, Jim?...Retribution, I guess."

"For what?"

"I was never--a--a real sister."

Jim caressed the soft, thin little hand while he gazed into the fire and
pondered. A chill of fear of he knew not what crept over him. Glory had
always worried him. Her childish pranks then her girlish escapades--but
now she seemed a woman!

"Perhaps that was my fault," he replied, regretfully.

"Jim--you're changed," said his sister, quickly.

"Sure. I'd not been much good if this Arizona hadn't changed me."

"I hope it does as well by me," she continued, wistfully.

"Glory...what're you driving at?" burst out Jim, no longer able to
repress a mounting anxiety.

"Please--ask me questions."

That from Gloriana May was indeed a strange request. Jim felt an
uncomfortable constriction of his throat.

"Glory, have you really lung trouble?" he queried, sharply.

"No. Mother and Dad think so because I got so white and thin. I coaxed
Dr. Williamson to hint of that. I wanted to come West."

"Thank goodness!--But, you deceitful girl! Why such an extreme? And are
you really ill?"

"Only run down, Jim."

"From what?"

"Worry--unhappiness."

Jim imagined his ears were deceiving him. Yet there his sister sat,
slipping closer to him. She was now half off the arm of his chair and her
head rested on his shoulder. A faint fragrance came from her hair. He let
a long silence ensue. He could not ask just then what was forming in his
mind.

"Love affair?" he finally asked, lightly.

"Affair--but not love," she replied, scornfully.

"So that's it?"

"No, that's not it. Still, it had a lot to do with it."

"Gloriana!" That was how he had used to address her when he was on his
dignity or wished to reprove. She laughed a little, remembering it.

"Jim, I--I have disgraced the family," she admitted, with a catch in her
breath, and suddenly she sat up.

"My God!...Oh, Glory--you can't be serious!" he exclaimed, distressed,
yet uncertain.

"I wish to heaven I wasn't serious."

Jim tried to prepare himself for a blow. Contact with the rough and
wholesome West had knocked pride and prejudice out of his head.
Nevertheless, something of the former reared its hydra head. In his
gathering apprehension and horror he sensed that he was on trial. He must
react differently to this revelation. Glory had come to him in her
trouble. If he repulsed or scorned her! If he showed any of the old
outraged brotherly disfavour! Suddenly he happened to think of Curly
Prentiss--that cool, easy, careless firebrand of a Texas cowboy. How
would he take such a confession from a once-loved sister? Beloved still,
he discovered, poignantly! But that thought of Curly was sustaining. Its
content typified the West.

"Well, so little sister has kicked over the traces?" he queried, as
coolly as ever Curly could have said it.

"Jim, don't misunderstand," she said, quickly. "I've been wild, crazy,
out of my head. But I can still look you in the eyes."

"Shore, I never had any notion you couldn't," he replied, essaying
Curly's drawl. Then he put his arm around her, which action brought Glory
slipping into his lap. Her head went down with a suspicious haste. Her
nervous hands tightened on his. "Tell me all about it."

"Jim, you remember when I was sixteen the Andersons took me up," began
Glory, presently. "That began my gadding about, my desire for fine
clothes--excitement, dancing--and so forth. Then Aunt Mary left me that
money. And you remember the summer I graduated--how gay I was--what a
wonderful time I had!...Even before you left I was travelling with a
pretty fast set. But we younger girls hadn't really gotten into it yet.
After you left home I was about ready for it, I guess. But something
happened. I met a man named Darnell--from St. Louis. He was handsome--and
all the girls were crazy over him. That tickled me. I--I thought I was in
love with him. It might have been just as well--the way things turned
out. I could have done worse. Mother wanted me to marry Mr. Hanford--you
know him--the dry-goods merchant."

"Not Henry Hanford?" broke out Jim, incredulously.

"Yes, Henry Hanford. He was more than old enough to be my father. But
Mother nagged me nearly to death. I dare say she wanted me to
be--safe--Dad hated my running around--and he didn't like Ed Darnell. So
we had a bad time for some months...I thought I was engaged to Ed. So did
everybody else. All the same, I wasn't. He said he was mad about me, but
he didn't ask me to marry him...He borrowed a lot of money from me. He
was a gambler. Then he embezzled money from Dad. Oh, how wretched it was!
He left town, without a word to me. The truth came out--and--and the
Andersons, the Loyals, the Millers--all my old friends dropped me. Cut me
dead!...That broke Mother's heart. And it went hard with Dad...Well, I
had reached the end of my rope. You know what gossip is in a little town.
And gossip made it a great deal worse than it actually was. I had been a
fool over Ed Darnell. I had snubbed some of the boys because of him. I
had been wild as a partridge--so far as parties, dancing, running around
were concerned. But I wasn't as bad as I looked. Still that queered me at
home, when the crash came...And, Jim, it knocked me out. I began to go
down-hill. I realised I was done for there. I worried myself sick. Many
and many a night I cried myself to sleep. I went downhill...And then I
got thinking about the West--your West. I read all your letters to
Mother. You never wrote me. And I thought, if I could get out West, far
away, it'd be my salvation...and here I am."

"Well, is that all?" drawled Jim, true to his imitation of Curly. "You
shore had me plumb scared."

"Jim!" she cried, and then she kissed his cheek in mute gratitude. By
that Jim felt how hard it had been for Gloriana to confess to him--how
little of a brother he had been in times past. Then before he could say
more she burst into tears, which was another amazing thing, and Jim could
do no more than hold her. Pity and tenderness welled up in his heart for
his sister. Indeed, there had been cause for her to come West and throw
herself upon his protection. The very idea was incredible, yet here she
was, sobbing softly now, and gaining control of herself.

"Thank God I--I had the--courage to come," she said, speaking a thought
aloud. "I--I never knew how--good Jim was!"

That established a character Jim regretted he hardly deserved, and one to
which he felt he must live up.

"Glory, I've got a little confession to make, myself," he said, with a
happy laugh. "Not that I've actually fallen by the wayside. But I've gone
back on the East. And I'm--"

"Wait," she interrupted, sitting up to dry her eyes. "I haven't told
all--and what seems the worst to me."

"Gosh!" ejaculated Jim, with a sinking sensation in his chest. "Perhaps
you'd better not tell me more."

"Jim, I met Ed Darnell in the station at St. Louis," went on Glory,
hastily, as if eager to impart what seemed important. "Quite by accident.
I had to change trains there and wait five hours. And it was my bad luck
to run into him first thing...Well, he raved. He made a thousand
excuses...The liar! The thief!...I absolutely refused to have any more to
do with him. Yet I was scared stiff at him. He had some queer power over
me. But I had sense enough to realise I despised him. Then he threatened
me--swore he'd follow me. And Jim--that's exactly what he'll do. He knew,
of course, about Uncle Jim, the rich ranchman. Mother gabbed a lot. At
first she was fascinated by Ed. I didn't tell him where I was going, but
he could find out easily. And he'll come. I saw it in his eyes...And that'd
be dreadful."

"Let him come," replied Jim, grimly. "I hope he does. It would be a bad
move for Mr. Darnell."

"What would you do?" queried Gloriana, with all a woman's curiosity.

"Glory, you're out West now. It'll take you some time to realise it...I'd
impress that fact upon Mr. Darnell pretty pronto. And if it wasn't
enough, I'd tell Curly Prentiss."

"That wonderful-looking cowboy!" exclaimed Gloriana. "He seemed so kind
and nice. He wouldn't hurt anyone."

Jim laughed outright. Gloriana would be the tenderfoot of all tenderfeet
who ever struck Arizona.

"Glory, I'm engaged," he blurted out suddenly, with a gulp.

"Jim Traft! You've kept up that catty Sue Henderson," exclaimed Glory,
incredulously.

At first Jim could not connect any of his Missouri attachments of bygone
days with that particular name. When he did he laughed, not only at
Glory's absurd guess, but at the actual realisation. Ten times ten months
might have elapsed since he left home.

"No, Glory. My girl is a real Westerner," he replied.

"Real Westerner? What do you mean by that? Uncle Jim was born in the
East. He couldn't be Western."

"He's pretty much so, as you will discover. Molly was born in Arizona.
She's about eighteen. Twice in her life she has been to Flagerstown, and
that is the extent of her travels. She lives down in the Cibeque, one of
the wildest valleys in Arizona."

"Molly--Molly what?" queried Glory, her white smooth brow wrinkling, and
her fine eyes dilating and changing, as she bent them upon Jim.

"Molly Dunn. Isn't it pretty?" rejoined Jim, warming to his subject. He
had need to.

"Rather. But sort of common, like Jones or Brown. Is she pretty?"

"Glory, I reckon there's only one prettier girl in the world, and that's
you."

It was a subtle and beautiful compliment, but somehow lost upon Gloriana
May.

"You were always getting a case on some girl--back home. It never lasted
long," said his sister, reflectively.

"This will last."

"How about her family?" came the inevitable interrogation.

"Arizona backwoods. And that's as blue-blooded as the skies out here,"
replied Jim, rising to the issue. "Her father was ruined by a range feud
between cattlemen and sheepmen. Her mother has been a hardworking
pioneer. You will learn what that means. Molly has one brother. Slinger
Dunn. I don't know his first name. But the Slinger comes from his
quickness and use with a gun. He has killed several men--and shot up I
don't know how many."

"Desperado?" gasped Gloriana.

"Of course an Easterner would call him that. I did at first. But now he's
just Slinger to me--and the very salt of the earth."

Dismay, consternation, and sincere regret succeeded one another on
Gloriana's expressive face.

"Dad called me the black sheep of our family," she said. "But I'm afraid
there are two...It'll kill Mother...Jim, they have no idea whatever of
all this. Dad brags to his friends about you. How you are in charge of
his brother's big cattle ranch. Nothing of this--this you tell me--ever
crept into your letters. I know them by heart."

"That's true, Glory. I left out the real stuff which was making me over.
And besides, it all sort of bunched just lately...Look here." Jim
unbuttoned his flannel shirt at the neck, and pulled his collar back to
expose a big angry scar at his breast.

"My heavens! what's that?" she queried, fearfully.

"My dear sister, that's a bullet hole," he replied, not without pride.

"You were shot?"

"I should smile."

"My God!--Jim, this is awful! You might have been killed."

"Shore I might. I darn near was. I lay in the woods two days with that
wound. Alone!"

"And you can smile about it!" she ejaculated, her eyes dark with awe and
fading terror.

"It helped make a man of me."

"Some desperado shot you?"

"Yes, one of the real bad ones."

"Oh, Jim," she cried. "I hope--I pray you--you didn't kill him."

"It turned out I didn't, Glory--which was darn lucky. But at the time I'd
have shot him to bits with great pleasure."

"This terrible West has ruined you. Mother always said it would. And Dad
would only laugh."

"Nope, Glory. You've got it wrong. I'm not ruined by a long shot. And I
hope you've sense and intelligence enough left to see it."

"Jim. I've nothing left," she replied. "You're wild, strange to me--sort
of cool and indifferent like that Prentiss fellow. I'm just terribly
sorry this West has made you rough--crude. I know I'll hate it."

"Glory, you just misunderstand," rejoined Jim, patiently. "It'll jar you
at first--more than it did me. You were always a sensitive, high-strung
thing. And your trouble has only made you worse. But please give the West
and me the benefit of a doubt, before you condemn. Wait, Glory. I swear
you will gain by that. Not have any regrets! Not hurt any of these
Westerners."

But he saw that he made no impression on her. He had shocked her, and it
nettled him. She had quite forgotten already how kindly he had taken her
dereliction.

"Where is this Molly Dunn?" asked Gloriana, curiosity strong.

"She's here."

"In this house?"

"Yes. She and her mother. I fetched them up from the Cibeque. Molly is
going to school. It's great--and a little pathetic--the way she goes to
study. Poor kid.--she had so little chance to learn...I expect to marry
her in the spring, if I can persuade her."

"Persuade her!" echoed Gloriana, with a wonderful flash of eyes. "I dare
say that will be extremely difficult."

"It probably will be," replied Jim, coolly. "Especially after she meets
you. But Uncle Jim adores her and he's keen to see me married."

"Well, I deserve it," mused Gloriana. "What?"

"A dose of my own medicine."

"Glory, I don't want to lose patience with you," said Jim, slowly, trying
to keep his temper. "I can understand you, for I felt a little like you
do when I landed out here...Now listen. I'm glad you've come to me. I'm
sorry you've made mistakes and suffered through them. But they are really
nothing. I predict the West will cure them in less than a year. You won't
know yourself. You could not be dragged back to Missouri."

Gloriana shook her beautiful head in doubt and sorrow.

"If you only hadn't engaged yourself to this backwoods girl!" she said,
mournfully. "But she saved my life," declared Jim, hotly. "She fought a
fellow--one of those desperadoes you mentioned--fought him like a wild
cat--bit him--hung on him with her teeth to keep him from murdering me as
I sat tied hand and foot...saved my life until her brother Slinger got
there to kill Jocelyn."

"The wretch!" exclaimed Gloriana, in passion and horror. Her face was
white as alabaster and her eyes great dark gulfs of changing brilliance.
"Did this Slinger Dunn really kill him?"

"You bet he did. And two other desperadoes. They shot Slinger all up.
He's in the hospital at Flag. I'll take you in to see him."

"Wonderful!" breathed Gloriana, for the moment thrilled out of her
disgust and horror. "But, Jim, why all this bloody murdering? I thought
you worked on a cattle range."

"I do. That's the trouble," said Jim, and forthwith launched into brief
narrative of the drift fence and subsequent events which led up to his
capture by the Cibeque gang, of Hack Jocelyn's arrival with Molly, who
had consented to sacrifice herself to save Jim, of Jocelyn's treachery
and how Molly fought to keep him from killing Jim until Slinger got
there.

When Jim concluded, there was ample evidence that Gloriana did not lack
heart and soul, though they were glossed over by restraint and
sophistication. This reassured Jim in his stubborn hope that Gloriana was
undeveloped and needed only the hard and wholesome contacts she was sure
to get in Arizona.

"But, Jim, you can't marry a girl who bites like a little beast, no more
than I could the brother who kills men," was Gloriana's grave reply.

"I can't--can't I?" retorted Jim, goaded at the regurgitation of a
forgotten phase of the Traft boy he had once been. "Well, I am going to
marry her, and I'll think myself the luckiest fellow on earth."

Plainly she thought he was out of his head or that Arizona had broken
down his sense of values. But she did not voice either conviction.

"Gloriana, I think I'd better take you in to meet Uncle Jim--and the
Dunns," concluded Jim.

"Yes, since it has to be," she replied, soberly. "Give me time to make
myself presentable. Come back for me in fifteen minutes."

"Sure. I'm curious to see what you call presentable," said Jim, and went
out whistling. Nevertheless, his heart was heavy as he proceeded down the
hall toward the living-room.



CHAPTER SIX

Jim found his uncle alone in the living-room. "Hey!" he said, "when are
you going to trot my niece in?"

"Pretty soon. She was tired and wants to clean up after the long ride."

"How is she, Jim?" he asked, anxiously.

"White and thin. Looks wonderful, though. You could have knocked me over
with a feather, Uncle."

"Wal, I reckon I'm plumb ready for mine."

At this juncture Molly and her mother came in, and it was certain Jim had
never seen Molly so pretty, so simply and becomingly attired. He did not
see how Gloriana could help admiring her.

"Oh, Jim, did your sister come?" she asked, eagerly.

"You bet. Curly and the boys were there with me. It was a circus."

"I shore reckon," agreed Molly, her eyes round and bright. She was
excited, trembling a little.

"I'll fetch Glory in pronto."

Jim went out and thoughtfully wended his way to the west wing of the huge
ranch-house. In a certain sense this event was a thrilling and happy one,
but in the main it was shadowed by misgivings. He tapped at Gloriana's
door, and at her call he entered.

He stared. Was this lovely white creature Gloriana Traft? She wore a
pale-blue dress, without sleeves, and cut somewhat low. She was slender,
but there was not an ungraceful line about her. And she had a little
colour in her cheeks, whether from excitement or from artificial means
Jim could not tell.

"Glory, if you let the boys see you in that rig we can't go on ranching,"
he said, with grave admiration.

"Why not?" she asked, not knowing how to take him.

"Because this place would beat the Pleasant Valley War all hollow. You
just look like--like some beautiful sweet flower."

His genuine praise brought more colour to her cheeks. "Thank you, Jim.
It's nice to hear I look well. But this dress is nothing. I've some new
ones and I'll have to wear them, even if your ranching can't go
on...Guess I'd better put my coat around me. That hall was like
Greenland's icy mountains."

"This house is a big old barn. But the living-room is comfortable," said
Jim as he replaced the screen before the fire.

"Jim, if I catch cold again it'll be the end of little Glory."

"Don't talk nonsense. This is a beginning for you, Glory," he replied,
warmly, and he kissed her. Gloriana caught his hand and clung to it. Her
action and the sudden flash of her face toward him gave Jim a clue to
something he had not before guessed. Glory might resemble a proud, cold,
aloof young princess, but she really was unconsciously hungering for
love, kindness, sympathy. By that Jim judged how she had been hurt, and
through it he divined he could win her. Right there Jim decided on the
attitude he would adopt with his sister.

"Jim, my failure and disgrace do not alter the fact that I represent your
family out here," she said, as they went out.

The remark rather flustered Jim. He was not used to complexity, and he
could find no words in which to reply. He hurried her down the hall to the
living-room, and opened the door for her to enter. When he followed and
closed it Gloriana had let her coat fall to the floor and was advancing
quickly to meet the rancher.

"Oh, Uncle Jim, I know you," she said, happily as if she had expected not
to.

"Wal--wal! So you're my niece Gloriana?" he replied, heartily, yet with
incredulity. "I remember a big-eyed little girl back there in Missouri.
But you can't be her."

"Yes, I am, Uncle. I've merely grown up...I'm so glad to see you again."
She gave him her hands and kissed him.

"Wal, it can't be, but if you say so I'll have to believe," he said,
quaintly. "I reckon I'm powerful pleased to have you come
West...Gloriana, meet some friends of ours--Arizona folks from down
country...Mrs. Dunn and her daughter Molly."

"Gloriana, I'm shore happy to welcome you heah," said Molly, with simple
sweet warmth. She was tremendously impressed--Jim had never seen her so
pale--but there was no confusion for her in this meeting. Her eyes had a
shining, earnest light. Jim could not have asked more. She was true to
Molly Dunn. She was Western. She had stuff in her. Never in her life had
she been subject to such an intense and penetrating look as Gloriana gave
her. Jim's heart leaped to his throat. Was Glory going to turn out a
terrible snob?

"Molly Dunn! I'm glad to meet you," replied Gloriana, cordially, and she
was quick to accept the shy advance of the Western girl. She met Molly's
kiss halfway. Jim almost emitted audibly a repressed breath of relief.
But he was not sanguine. Gloriana appeared the epitome of perfect
breeding, and she was too fine to let the Western girl outdo her in being
thoroughbred. Yet heart and soul were wanting. And Jim thought that if he
felt it Molly must have, too.

Uncle Jim beamed upon Gloriana and then upon Molly, and lastly upon his
constrained nephew.

"Jim, shore there's such a thing as luck," he said. "I reckon I didn't
believe so once. But look there. An' think of your havin' a sister an' a
sweetheart like them."

It was a simple warm tribute from a lonely old bachelor who had given his
heart to Molly and now shared it with Gloriana. But the compliment
brought a blush to Gloriana's pale cheek and broke Molly's composure.

"Wal, I don't know aboot it, as Curly would say," drawled Jim, far from
feeling like Curly. "A man can have enough luck to kill him."

This unexpected sally from him made the girls laugh and eased the
situation. All took seats except Molly, who stood beside Gloriana's
chair, plainly fascinated. It gave Jim a pang to see that Molly had
already fallen in love with his sister. If Gloriana would only give the
Western girl the smallest kind of a chance!

Thereupon followed a half-hour of pleasant conversation, mostly for
Gloriana's edification, and received by her with undisguised enthusiasm.
Then she said she was very tired and begged to be excused.

"Jim, take me back to my Indian wigwam. I'd never find it," she begged,
and bade the others good-night.

When back in Gloriana's room Jim stirred the fire and put on a few fresh
sticks of wood.

"Well?" he queried, presently, rising to face his sister, and he was
quite conscious of the gruffness of his voice.

To Jim's surprise she placed a hand on each of his shoulders.

"Jim, your Western girl is distractingly pretty, sweet as a wild flower,
honest and good as gold--and far braver than I could have been. I saw
what you couldn't see. Probably it was harder for her to meet me than
that Hack fellow she--she bit to save your life. I'm your family, so to
speak."

"Thanks, Glory," replied Jim, somewhat huskily. "I--I was afraid--"

"I'd not like her? Jim, I don't blame you for loving her. I did like
her...But--and there's the rub--she is illiterate. She comes from an
illiterate family. She's only a very common little person--and certainly
not fit to be the wife of James Traft."

"That's your Eastern point of view," returned Jim. "It might--though I
don't admit it--be right if we were back home. But we're out West. I love
the West. It has made me a man. It is now my home. I worship this 'common
little person', as you call her. I think she is farthest removed from
that. She's strong and true and big, and crude like this great raw West.
And as I've thrown in my fortunes here I consider myself lucky to win
such a girl...All of which, Glory, dear, is aside from the fact that but
for her I'd be dead...But for Molly you wouldn't have had any brother to
come to!"

"Don't think me ungrateful," she rejoined, in hurried, shuddering
earnestness. "I am...and indeed you talk like a man. I admire and respect
you. But I had to tell you the ethics of it. I wouldn't be a Traft if I
failed to tell you."

"Then--you're not against us?" queried Jim, hopefully.

"Jim, I disapprove. But it would be absurd for me to oppose. I have come
to you for help--for a home--to find my chance in life, if there be one.
Besides, I like Molly...The trouble will come not from me, but from her.
Can't you see it? I don't think I ever was subjected to such study. Yet
no trace of jealousy or bitterness! She was just being a woman seeing
you, your family, your position through me. I saw fear in her eyes as she
bade me good-night. That fear was not of me, or that I might come between
you. It was a fear of realisation, of love. She ought not to marry you
because she is Molly Dunn of the Cibeque! And, Jim, if she's really as
strong and fine as it seems she is, she will not marry you."

"I've had the very same fear myself," admitted Jim. "But I always laughed
myself out of it. Now you--"

"Make it worse," she interposed. "I'm sorry. I ought not to have come...I
could go away somewhere, I suppose, and work...But, Jim, the damage is
done."

"I wouldn't let you go. I think we're making a mountain out of a
molehill. It'll sure come out all right, if you'll help."

"Jim, I promise. I'll do my utmost for you. I'll be nicer to that little
girl than I ever was to anyone in my life. I can make people like me. But
the worst of me is I'm cold. I've been frozen inside since Ed Darnell
deceived me. I can't promise to love Molly, though it'd appear easy
enough."

She seemed so eloquent, so moving, so beautiful that Jim could have
decried aloud her intimation of her indifference.

"Glory, I couldn't ask any more," he concluded. "It's more than I had
hoped for. You have made me feel--oh, sort of warm deep down--glad you've
come West. We'll win out in the end. We've got the stuff...And now
good-night. You're worn out. Be sure to put the screen in front of the
fire."

"Good-night, brother Jim," she said, and kissed him. "I'm glad I came."

Jim left her with her kiss lingering on his lips. Gloriana had never been
the kissing kind, and it was easy to tell now that she had not changed.
She was older, deeper, more complex, with a hint of sadness about her
which he wanted to eradicate. The cowboys would do that. They would
change even the spots of a leopard. He went toward his room, and on the
way tapped on Molly's door.

"Are you in bed?" he called.

"No, Jim--not quite," she replied, and presently opened the door a few
inches to disclose a sweet, agitated face.

"I just wanted to ask...Do you like her?"

"Like--I shore fell in love powerful deep. She's--she's--" But Molly
could find no adequate word to express herself.

Jim darted his head downward to give her a quick kiss. "Darling, I'd
gamble my soul on you," he whispered, gratefully. Then louder, "Did your
mother like Glory?"

"Shore. But she was aboot scared stiff...An', Jim, me too--a little."

"Well, now, you mustn't be. Glory said some mighty sweet things about
you."

"Oh, Jim--tell me," she begged, breathlessly.

"Not much. I'll keep them until I want something special out of you, Ha,
ha!--but they're awfully nice...Good-night, Molly."

Jim found his uncle dozing before the living-room fire. "Wake up and tell
me what I'm to do?"

"Huh?" grunted Uncle Jim.

"Wake up and talk to me," replied Jim. "Did you like Glory? What on earth
am I to do with two such girls on my hands? How can I keep the cowboys
from murdering each other? Tell me what..."

"One at a time, you Missouri rooster...Wal, Glory is the most amazing
girl I ever saw. Bright an' smart as beautiful! She's got a haid on her,
Jim. An' only nineteen. I reckon she'll be a bitter pill for Molly. But
Molly is true blue. She'll be Western. In the end she an' Glory will be
sisters. Not soon, but you can bet on it. An' your part is goin' to be
harder'n buildin' the drift fence. Shore, Glory will upset the cowboys.
Because she's sweet, she's nice, she'll be interested in them--an' the
poor dumbhaids will reckon they can win her. At that she could do worse
than be won by Curly or Bud or Jackson Way."

"I've come somewhere near that conclusion myself," rejoined Jim,
thoughtfully. "Confidentially, Uncle, I want to tell you Gloriana has
come West for good."

"Fine!" ejaculated the rancher. "Is she thet sick? or what--"

"She's not so sick as it appeared. Only run down. She got involved in an
unfortunate affair back home. Took up with some flashy fellow--thought
she loved him when she didn't--and he turned out bad. Borrowed money from
her and cheated money out of Dad. It hurt Glory with her crowd, which she
was pretty sick of, anyhow, I guess. She's the proudest of the whole raft
of Trafts...So she has turned to me, poor kid."

"Ahuh!--Wal, dog-gone!...Jim, you ain't implyin' some scoundrel ruined
your sister?"

"No, thank God," returned Jim, fervently. "But he ruined her reputation,
at least. Fellow named Ed Darnell. And Glory is sure he'll show up here."

"Wal, if he does I reckon it'll be aboot the last place he ever shows
up," replied the cattleman, grimly.

"I said as much...So, Uncle, we've got the happiness and future of two
wonderful girls to make. I swear I'm stumped. I'm scared. I'm stuck
pretty deep."

"Wal, it's a problem, shore. But you're young an' you want results too
quick."

"I can be patient. I'll do everything under the sun. But suppose Molly
gets upset by Glory? Scared of my family, so to speak."

"Wal, in thet case I'd put Glory up against the real stuff out heah. An'
have Molly with her. Thet'll square the balance. Then they'll learn from
each other."

"It's a good idea," agreed Jim, almost with enthusiasm. "You mean put
Glory up against rough outdoor life--horses, cowboys, camp, cold, heat,
rain, dust, and hail? Hard beds, poor feed, privation--danger--and so
on?"

"Shore, an' so on. Put her up against everythin' thet Molly knows."

"It's risky, Uncle. Glory is not strong. It might kill her."

"Wal, you'd have to go slow an' easy till she could just aboot stand it,
an' thet's all."

"But, if it didn't kill her--" mused Jim, fascinated by the memory of how
terrible and wonderful the raw West had been to him. It was that which
had won him for Molly Dunn; and now he regarded the stronger and
primitive in him more desirable than any development he might have had in
the East. The thing had to be gone through to be understood. Gloriana
would succumb to it sooner than he had done, despite or probably because
of her sensitive, feminine nature. And during this transition of his
sister he was going to have trouble holding on to his sweetheart. Jim
regretted that he had not persuaded Molly to marry him before Gloriana
had come out. Could he do it yet? His mind whirled and his blood leaped
at the suggestion. But it would not do, because Molly might suspect the
reason. All of a sudden he realised that his uncle was talking.

"Beg pardon, Uncle, I was lost."

"Wal, I was changin' the subject," replied the rancher. "Locke was in
awhile ago an' he's got wind of Bambridge shippin' steers tomorrow from
Winslow. He was figurin' thet it might be a good idea for you to run down
there an' look 'em over."

"Gee! In this weather?"

"Wal, you forget we're up high heah on the mountain slope. Winslow is
down in the desert. Reckon there won't be any snow. Anyway, weather never
fazes this Bambridge cattleman, thet's shore."

"What's the idea, Uncle?" asked Jim, soberly.

"Bambridge doesn't know you, nor none of his outfit, so Locke reckons.
An' you've never been in Winslow. You could look them steers over without
bein' recognised. An' for thet matter it wouldn't make a whole lot of
difference if you were...Whatever is comin' of this Bambridge deal is
shore comin'."

"Uncle Jim, you expect trouble with him?"

"Son, I've seen a hundred Bambridges come an' go. I know the brand. I've
been forty years raisin' steers...Ten years ago a fine-spoken, most damn
likable fellow, named Stokes, drifted into Flag. Had money. Began to buy
stock an' sell. Soon was operatin' big. Everybody his friend. But there
was somethin' aboot Stokes thet stuck in my craw. An', Jim, I seen him
hangin' to a cottonwood tree--by the neck."

"Queer business, this cattle-raising," mused Jim, darkly.

"Wal, so long's there are big open ranges there'll be rustlers. An' I
reckon when the ranges are fenced the cattlemen of my type an' Bambridge,
an' Jed Stone, too, all will have passed. It's a phase of the West."

"You regard Jed Stone as a cattleman?" queried Jim, in surprise.

"Shore do. He's a factor you've got to regard. Yellow Jacket belongs to
you, legally, because I bought it, an' gave it to you. But Stone shore
thinks it belongs to him," replied Traft, with a dry laugh.

"Humph! And for what reason?"

"He's just been ridin' it for years, thinkin' it free range, same as the
rest. But it's a ranch, an' two sections of land, twelve hundred acres,
have been surveyed. The best water--an' by the way, Jim, Yellow Jacket
Spring is the wonderfullest in Arizona--an' level ground are in thet
surveyed plot. The corners were hid pretty well by the man who first
owned the ranch. I haven't been down there for years. But Locke has an'
he's seen them. So we can prove our claim."

"Good heavens, Uncle!" exclaimed Jim. "Do you mean we may have to prove
to an outlaw that we have a right to a piece of land you bought?"

"Not Stone. You'll have to prove it to him with guns. Haw, haw!...But
Bambridge, an' mebbe thet cattleman who's in with him--I forget the
name--may want to see our proofs. Of course, son, nothin' but a little
fight may ever come of this. But I've a hunch Yellow Jacket will catch
your eye. It did mine. It's the wildest an' most beautiful place to live
I ever seen in Arizona. Yellow Jacket isn't a valley, exactly. Really
it's a great wide canyon, with yellow walls. Protected from storms. Best
place to hunt in Arizona. Bear, deer, turkey, just thick. An' very few
hunters ever get in there, because it's a long way an' there's plenty
good huntin' ranges closer. Lots of beaver left in Yellow Jacket, an'
where there's beaver you bet it's wild."

"Well, I've set my heart on Yellow Jacket, Uncle Jim Traft," declared
Jim, forcefully. "And Slinger Dunn has a half interest in the stock
running there. That was the deal I made with him, you know, to get him
into the Diamond."

"Shore, an' you don't know how good a deal it was. Wish Dunn could go to
Winslow with you...An' come to think of it, Jim, you take Curly along."

"Fine. We'll hop the early train."

In the nipping frosty dawn, Jim and Curly went into the kitchen, shutting
the door, and they warmed their palms over Jeff's fire until breakfast
was ready. Curly was not his usual bright self, which might have been
owing to the night before, of which he had hinted, but also it might have
been the portent of Jim's early call. They had breakfast and hurried out
into the snow. The morning was still, with the frost crackling, and the
fence posts glittering with sunshine on the snow. Curly had little to say
until they reached the station.

"Ring Locke was in last night," announced Curly, "an' he shore had bad
news."

"Thought you were out late?" queried Jim, gruffly.

"Wal, I wasn't. Ring got wind of this herd Bambridge was shippin'.
Dog-gone-it, Ring's always gettin' tipped off aboot things we don't want
to heah. He has too many friends."

"Wait till we're on the train," replied Jim, tersely. The station-room
and platform were not the places just then for indiscriminate speech.
Cowboys, cattlemen, Mexican labourers, and other passengers for this
early train, were noisily in evidence.

When they got into the train, to find a seat somewhere isolated from
those occupied, Jim whispered, "What did Locke hear?"

"Some darn fool sent him word there were Diamond steers in thet bunch of
stock Bambridge is shippin'."

"So that's it? Uncle didn't tell me Locke said that...The nerve of this
Bambridge!...Curly, what're you growling about?"

"Locke ought to have kept his big mouth shet...We shore cussed him last
night."

"And why?"

"'Cause we all knew what'd come off pronto. Old Traft would send you down
there, an' if you saw any steers with our brand you'd go right to
Bambridge an' tell him."

"I should smile I would."

Curly threw up his hands, an expressive gesture of his when he was
helpless, which in truth was not often.

"Why shouldn't I tell him, cowboy?" queried Jim, somewhat nettled. How
long it took to understand these queer cattlemen!

"Wal, we reckon Bambridge oughtn't know we're suspicious, till we've had
a spell at Yellow Jacket."

"But, Curly, surely Locke and Uncle Jim know more what is best than you
cowboys."

"Hell, yes. But they don't have to do the fightin'."

The way Curly spat out those words, as well as their content, gave Jim a
breath-arresting moment. Indeed it was true--Locke was an aggressive
superintendent, and the old rancher a stern and ruthless dealer with
crooked cattlemen. No more was said then, and Jim gazed out at the
speeding white and black landscape. The pines had given place to cedars
and pinons, and these soon made way for sagebrush. The snow thinned out,
and when the train got down on the open desert the white began to give
way to the yellow of grass and occasional green tuft of sage and
greasewood.



CHAPTER SEVEN

The Hash-Knife were back from a drive, the nature of which showed in
their begrimed, weary faces, their baggy eyes, and the ragged condition
of their garb.

"Home!" croaked Malloy, flinging his crooked length down before the fire
Stone was building.

"My Gawd!" ejaculated Stone, staring at the little gunman. And his men
simulated his look if not his speech. The idea of Croak Malloy giving
expression to such a word as home was so striking as to be incongruous,
not to say funny.

"Did you ever have a home?" added the outlaw leader, more curious than
scornful.

"Aw, you can't gibe me," replied Malloy, imperturbably. "What I mean is
hyar's rest an' comfort--after a hell of a job."

"It shore was," agreed Pecos.

"An' ain't it good to be down out of the snow an' thet damn Tonto wind,"
said Madden. "Like spring down hyar at Yellow Jacket. It smells
different."

"Wal, we'll sit tight till spring, you can gamble on thet," spoke up the
gambler, Carr.

"Mebbe we will," interposed Jed Stone, sarcastically, yet not without
pathos.

"Aw hell!" bit out Malloy. "Jed, don't begin your belly-achin', now we're
home. We've got supplies till spring, plenty of drink an' money to gamble
with. Let's forget it an' be happy."

Sonora came in dragging a pack, and young Frank Reed followed. Lang, the
ex-sheriff, also appeared heavily laden. It was about midday, and outside
the sun shone brightly warm. The air was cool and sweet with sage and
cedar, and had a hint of spring, though the time was early December.

"Reckon Jed built thet fire 'cause he's so absent-minded," remarked
someone.

"No, I want a cup of coffee. I'm soured on whisky...At that it ain't bad
to be back in the old cabin...--Bambridge anyhow!"

"He shore pulled a rummy deal," said Pecos, his tone harmonising with
Stone's.

"Wal, no one much ain't a-goin' to connect the Hash-Knife with thet
winter shippin' of stock. So what the hell?" replied Malloy. "But it
wasn't a slick trick to turn."

For Malloy to show disapproval of a cattle-steal seemed to prove it was
the last word in bold and careless rustling.

"Bambridge will skip Arizona pronto," put in Anderson, wagging his shaggy
head. "I'd have give my pipe to see thet young Traft call him."

"So would I--an' some more," said Stone, thoughtfully. "Nervy
youngster...Frank, tell me about it again."

"Boss, I told you twice," complained Reed.

"Sure. But we was on the trail an' it was cold an' windy. You made it
short an' sweet, too...Here's a cigar."

Thus importuned the young cowboy rustler lighted the cigar, smiling his
satisfaction, and settled himself comfortably.

"I was in Chance's saloon after the shippin', an' I heard a man say 'Damn
funny about thet Bambridge cattle-drive. I went by the railroad
stockyards late last night, 'cause I live out thet way. There wasn't no
cattle there. An' next mornin' at daylight the pen was full of bawlin'
steers.'"

"Haw haw!" croaked Malloy, gleefully, rubbing his thin brown hands.

"Laugh, you frog!" exclaimed Stone, darkly. "Thet drive was another
blunder. We ought to have left the cattle at Bambridge's ranch, which I
wanted to do. But he got sore...An' well--Frank--"

"We drove the stock in at midnight, as you-all ain't forgettin'," resumed
Reed, puffing his cigar. "It was a slick job fer any cow-punchin' outfit.
An' next mornin' at ten o'clock them steers was all on a stock train,
ready to move. Then I seen Curly Prentiss. Used to ride under him when he
had charge of the U Bar. He had a young fellar with him thet turned out
to be Jim Traft. They watched the cattle fer about two minutes. No more!
An' young Traft jumped right up an' down. You could see Prentiss talkin'
turkey to him. I made it my business to foller them back to the station.
An' you bet your life Curly Prentiss seen me. There ain't much thet
hombre doesn't see. But it was safe, I reckon, 'cause nobody knows I'm
with the Hash-Knife. Prentiss an' Traft went in the freight office, an' I
ducked in the station. As luck would have it, Bambridge came in with a
darkcomplected fellar, sporty dressed, an' goodlookin'. I edged over an'
heard Bambridge ask: 'Where you from?' The fellar said St. Louis. 'What
do you know about cattle?' He said nuthin', but he happened to know a
stock-buyer in Kansas City who told him to hunt up George Bambridge, if
he was goin' to Arizona. 'An' who's this stockman?' asked Bambridge,
quick like. He said 'Darnell'--I got thet name straight. 'Come to my
office up town later in the day. I'm busy now with this cattle
shipment.'...He was shore goin' to be damn busy in a minnit, only he
didn't guess it. Just then Prentiss an' Traft come in. They was both
packin' guns, which was funny only for Traft, I reckon. Prentiss sleeps
in a gun. They looked kinda fire-eyed, an' Traft stopped Bambridge right
in the middle of the station, an' he was in a hurry, too."

"Talk, an' come to the point," ordered Stone, in a cold, testy voice.

"Not much more," replied Reed, casually. "Traft asked, 'Are you George
Bambridge?'--an' he got a short answer.

"'You're shippin' some of my steers,' snapped Traft.

"Bambridge turned red as a turkey gobbler's comb. 'The hell you say, my
young cowpuncher! An' who may you be?'

"'My name is Traft,' said thet young cowpuncher, an' he said it loud.

"Bambridge went white now. 'Jim Traft's nephew?'

"'Yes, an' you're shippin' steers with my brand.'

"'What brand is thet?' jerked out Bambridge, sort of husky. He was
madder'n hellsfire.

"'Diamond brand.'

"'Ahuhm, I see.'...Bambridge sort of pulled himself together. 'Sorry, Mr.
Traft. Mistakes happen. This is a rush order. An' them Yellow Jacket
steers of yours overrun my range. An' I'm runnin' some new cowhands. Send
me a bill."

"'No, Mr. Bambridge, I'll not send you a bill now, but I'll send a
telegram East to have a count made of the Diamond steers in this
shipment,' said Traft, an' he shore looked a lot.

"'You call me a liar--an' a cattle thief?' busted out Bambridge, movin' a
hand back.

"'No. An' don't pull a gun. This gentleman with me is Curly Prentiss...I
didn't say you was a liar an' a thief. But this shipment has a queer look
an' I'll not be satisfied till it's been counted over.'

"'I tell you if there's Diamond steers on that train it's only a mistake.
Any rancher makes mistakes when he's rushed,' yelled Bambridge.

"'No, any rancher doesn't make such mistakes!'

"'Every cattleman drives stock sometimes thet ain't his.'

"'But not branded stock.'

"'Your uncle does it. An' fer that matter he's as much of a cattle thief
as Blodgett, or Babbitt, or me--or any--'

"'Don't you call my uncle a thief,' broke in young Jim. An' he cracked
Bambridge square on his ugly mug. You ought to have heard thet fist.
Sounded like hittin' a beef with an axe. Bambridge fell all over
himself--damn near knockin' down the stove, an' he didn't get up. It was
a good thing he was knocked out, fellars, for when I looked at Traft
again there he was waitin' with a gun, an' Prentiss was standin' far over
to one side."

"Pretty," croaked Malloy, with relish.

"Is thet all?" asked Stone, tersely.

"Jest about. Some men got around Bambridge an' helped him up. I seen
Prentiss eyein' me sort of sharp so I ducked back to Chance's an' hid
there till early next mornin'."

"Bambridge is a damn fool," burst out Stone. "An' I was the same for
dealin' with him."

"Looks like young Traft has done us a good turn," said Anderson, with
satisfaction.

"It shore does, Boss," added Pecos, quietly. "He throwed the light on
Bainbridge."

Others of the group attested to the same conviction.

"Well, yes, I reckon--mebbe," agreed the leader. "But it'll only make old
Jim Traft sorer."

"Jed, the fact that you once rode fer Traft an' stood well with him
sticks by you like a fish-bone in the throat," observed Anderson. "We've
all seen better days. We was all different once--onless mebbe Croak
there, who hasn't changed a damn iota since he was born."

"What's a iota?" inquired the subject of this remark. "Sounds somethin'
like IOU, which you'll all be doin' pronto."

"Men," said Stone, "I'll split this money I got fer this last job, an'
let myself out."

"Thet ain't fair," objected Malloy, who was strict in regard to shares of
spoil. He had been a bandit at an earlier stage of his career. "You did
thet last time."

"An' spoiled my settin' in for you an' Carr to fleece? It's jest as well.
I'd be broke soon, anyhow."

"Reckon thet four-flush rancher owes you quite a wad?"

"Ten thousand."

"------------!" cursed Malloy, in consternation. "Jed, he's goin' to do
you. Sure as shootin'!"

"He'd better not, or there'll be a little shootin'," declared the chief,
grimly. "But I don't mind admittin' thet the Hash-Knife has struck a snag
in this same hightalkin', crooked cattleman."

Stone left his men to their profanity and humour, both of which expended
some force over the debt Bambridge owed him, and he went outside to walk
around the familiar grounds.

Stone strolled under the great checker-barked junipers. Bear sign not yet
old showed on the brown matted earth; and gave him peculiar satisfaction
with its suggestion of the loneliness of this canyon. That feeling did
not survive long. He had a premonition that the race of the long
notorious Hash-Knife was about run. None of his men shared that with him,
and not improbably the big ranchers of the Mogollans and the Little
Colorado Range would have scouted the idea. But Stone knew better than
any of them; and this homecoming, as he bitterly called it, back to
Yellow Jacket, had made him pretty sick. He was weary with the toil, the
devious crooked ways, the sweat and blood, and, yes, the ignominy of the
Hash-Knife. He confessed it to himself for the first time, and realised
it as a factor that would lead to something drastic.

Yellow Jacket possessed a very singular feature. High and isolated and
enclosed as it was, it yet looked down, at least through that narrow
gateway, upon the desert which sloped away into purple infinitude. For
that country it had the right altitude, neither too high nor too low, and
its walls held back the winds and reflected the sunlight.

Some years back Stone had indulged in the illusion that he was going to
own Yellow Jacket. Bambridge had promised to give it to him. But
Bambridge had failed to get possession, and Stone's dream of quitting the
outlaw game and settling down to honest ranching had been dispelled. He
hated Bambridge for that, though he blamed himself for indulging in
dreams. Hunted man as he was, the plan could have been carried out.
Arizona was quick to recognise a cattleman whose shady dealings were in
the past.

From that hour Jed Stone was more than ever a preoccupied man, wandering
around the canyon during sunny hours, sitting in favourite places, or
smoking by the camp fire. Stone had something on his mind, and it was not
only the slow disintegration of the once virile Hash-Knife outfit, and
therefore the decline of his leadership, but a realisation that for the
first time in his life he leaned toward betrayal of those who trusted
him. And loyalty was the predominating trait of his personality. It was
loyalty to a friend that had lost him his place among honest cattlemen.

One afternoon, Jed, returning from a walk up the brook, heard a shot.
Rifle-shots were not rare around camp, but this came from a small gun of
heavy calibre. It had a dull, ominous sound that echoed from the walls.
Upon reaching the cabin he saw some of his men standing in a group--the
kind of group he had seen so often and which suggested so much.

"Croak jest shot Carr," said Pecos, coolly and slowly; but there was a
glint in his eyes.

"What for?" demanded Stone.

"Ask him."

Stone hesitated at the threshold of the cabin door. He did not trust
Malloy, or was it that he did not trust himself? Then he entered. The
little outlaw sat at the rude table, smoking a cigarette and shuffling a
deck of cards. Carr lay humped over a bench, his head resting on the
floor.

"Is he dead?" queried Stone, asking a superfluous question.

"Thet's funny," replied Malloy, with his little croaking laugh.

"Not so damn funny!" retorted the leader. "What'd you shoot him for?"

"Boss, he cheated at cards," returned Malloy, almost plaintively.

It was Stone's turn to laugh. Malloy's statement was preposterous, if not
in fact, then certainly in significance.

"Sure he cheated. But you all turn a trick when you can. Carr was the
slickest. You had no call to kill him for what you do yourself."

"Wal, he won all the money. Thet's the difference."

"Ahuh. I see. It's shore a big difference. An' where's all this money
Carr won?"

"He was stuffin' his pockets an' laughin' at us," said Malloy, with heat.
"Thet made me sore. An' I cussed him fer bein' a caird sharp. Then, Boss,
he got mean an' personal. He swore I stacked the cairds, which you all
know is a lie, 'cause I can't do it. The best trick I know is to slip an
ace from the pack or hold out a hand. An' the damn gambler threw thet in
my face."

Stone called the men in from outside. "Search Carr an' put what he has on
the table. Then take him out an' bury him--an' make it a good long way
from this cabin."

"Boss, what're you goin' to do with it?" asked Malloy, as the heaps of
gold coins and rolls of greenbacks were thumped upon the table.

"Divide it, accordin' to what each of you lost."

Then arose an argument among the gamesters over what amounts Carr had won
from them. Lang and Madden, and especially young Reed, lied about it.
Malloy frankly admitted he did not know how much he had lost, but
certainly all that he had. Stone finally adjusted the difficulty by
giving each the exact sum he had portioned out to them as their share of
the recent cattledrive. This caused some grumbling. And it turned out
that Stone himself, with the aid of Pecos, had to carry Carr out into the
woods and bury him.

"Much good his stone face done him," said the outlaw leader, wiping the
sweat from his face.

"Shore not much," agreed the Texan. "Boss, I reckon Carr got his deserts.
He was aimin' to slump with all thet money."

"You don't say? Who told you?" asked Stone, in surprise.

"Carr told me aboot it. Made no bones of braggin' he'd quit the outfit
soon as he'd won our pile."

"Did he ever say thet before Croak?"

"Shore. We all heahed him."

"Then that was why Croak shot him."

"I reckon so myself."

"Pecos, do you hold this job as good or bad for the Hash-Knife?"

"Wal, both, I reckon, Carr riled the fellars, most of the time. He was a
disorganiser. Bad hombre for a business like ours. On the other hand, the
fact that he meant to double-cross us an' thet Croak killed him in cold
blood shore is serious...Boss, the Hash-Knife is ailin' from dry rot."

"Ahuh...Money too easy--no hard work like we used to have--this two-faced
Bambridge--"

Pecos nodded his lean hawklike head, acquiescing silently with the
leader's unfinished speech.

Two mornings later, rather early, for Madden and Lang were cleaning up
after breakfast, Stone was surprised by Sonora darting in the cabin door
with his noiseless swift step.

"Boss, somebody comin'," he whispered.

"Who!"

"Cowboy--on foot."

"Sit tight, all of you," ordered Stone, and faced the door. Then Sonora
told him that there was a camp somewhere down outside the gateway of the
canyon. He had smelled smoke and had started to hunt for it when he had
spied this lone cowboy approaching up the trail.

After a long wait a leisurely footfall was heard outside. A shadow fell
across the sunny threshold. Then came a knock.

"Hello! Anybody home?" called a clear voice.

"Come in," replied Stone.

A tall, lithe-limbed, broad-shouldered young man stepped into sight. He
was bareheaded, and the sun shone on a tanned open countenance.

"I'm looking for Jed Stone," he announced, frankly.

"Wal, you're lookin' at him," replied the outlaw, tersely. "An' who may
you be, stranger?"

"Boss, it's young Jim Traft," spoke up Reed, excitedly.

"Yes. But I can talk for myself," returned the young visitor, with a
flash of sharp hazel eyes at Reed.

"Jim Traft!...What you want?" exclaimed Stone, in slow amaze.

"I want a straight talk with you."

"Wal, young fellar, thet ain't hard to get, though most ranchin' folks
reckon they'd get straight shootin' instead."

"I'd like to talk to you alone," said Traft, eagerly.

"No. What you have to say to me you'll say in front of my outfit."

"Very well, then," rejoined Traft, slowly, and he sat down on a box in
the broad sunlight that flared through the wide door. He did not appear
to be hurried or nervous; indeed, for an Easterner not long in the West
he was exceedingly cool. Stone liked his face, the keen, curious light of
hazel eyes, and his manner. And the thought stung Stone that twenty years
ago he was very like this young man. Traft glanced casually over the
Hash-Knife outfit, his gaze lingering longest on Croak Malloy, who sat on
the floor, leaning against a pack, and for once his expression was one of
interest. Though the little gunman did not realise it, he had respect for
courage.

"First off, my Uncle Jim didn't advise me to call on you. I've done that
on my own hook," said Traft.

"Wal, you needn't of told me thet," observed Stone.

"I've made my mind up ever since I got out of that fight at Tobe's.
Well--to try common sense."

"It ain't a bad idea, if the other party has any."

"Stone, would it surprise you to learn my uncle speaks well of you?"
queried the young rancher.

"Reckon it would," replied Stone, slowly. And a pang rent his heart.

"He has done so. To me, and I've heard the same to others. He said twenty
years ago he knew you and you rode for him--and there wasn't a finer or
squarer cowboy in Arizona. He said you must have been driven to outlawry.
Anyway, you never had been and you never would be a cattle thief at
heart...And it was a damn pity."

Stone felt a rush of hot blood to his face, and a cold tightness of skin
as the wave receded. His breast seemed to cave with a sickening pain. So
old Jim Traft spoke openly that way about him? Somehow it had a terrible
significance, almost a fatality, coming at this hour. Malloy's hollow
croaking laugh jarred on him.

"Wal--thet was--good of Jim--but I reckon--wasted sympathy," he replied,
rather hoarsely.

"I'm not concerned with the truth of it though, I believe my uncle," went
on Traft. "It just encouraged me to call on you and have a talk."

"No harm done, young fellar, but shore a little risky."

"I didn't see it. Curly Prentiss called me a crazy tenderfoot. And
Slinger Dunn swore it was ten to one I'd not come back. But I couldn't
see it that way. I'm not packing a gun or looking for trouble."

"Wal, Traft, I reckon if you'd happened to miss me here--you'd run into
trouble all right."

"I took the chance...But, Stone, before I make you the--the proposition I
have, I want to talk some more. Making the best of my opportunity." He
had to laugh at that, and once more glanced over Stone's men,
particularly at Malloy, who appeared to fascinate him. "I went down to
Winslow to look over a cattle shipment. Prentiss and I. We saw a big herd
of stock being loaded on a freight train. Wildest bunch of steers
Prentiss ever saw...Well, we only watched the loading for about two
minutes. A good many unbranded cattle--and some wearing the Diamond
brand...That's my mark, Stone. They were my cattle, and that was all I
wanted to know...I met Bambridge at the station and told him he was
shipping some of my steers. He laughed it off as a mistake. I needed only
one look at him to see he was as crooked as a rail fence. And that any
man who dealt with him would get the worst of it. So you can bet my talk
was pretty sharp. He got nasty and said old Jim Traft had made many such
mistakes--or words to that effect, and--but, Stone, what do you think of
him accusing my uncle of stealing cattle?"

"Kinda funny," replied Stone. "But the fact of ranchin' is, every
cattleman appropriates cattle thet ain't his. It can't be helped. The
dishonest cattleman takes advantage of this. All owin' to the custom of
the range. No rancher has ever thought of anythin' better than the
individual brand. An' thet shore has its defects."

"Bambridge didn't mean it that way," resumed Traft. "Anyway, I got mad
and swung on him--but, Stone, maybe you're a friend of Bambridge's?"

The sly, quick query was that of a boy and fetched a hollow croak from
Malloy, and a smile to the hard face of the outlaw leader.

"Nope. He's shore no friend of mine, an' I'd have liked to see you slug
him."

"I was sorry for it afterward. My outfit regretted it. Said it'd lead to
worse. But I got hot under the collar, and saw red--"

"Traft, if I don't miss my guess someone will make you spill red before
you're much older," returned the outlaw, significantly.

"Lord! I hope not," said Traft. "But I don't know what's come over me.
Prentiss told me that after I hit Bambridge I pulled my gun and
waited...Well, the other thing I wanted particularly to tell you is that
we can't find any of my three thousand head of stock. We're camped down
among the rocks, and, of course, we haven't ridden over Yellow Jacket.
But Ring Locke told me we'd find my cattle down there in the brakes. But
he was wrong. There are a few bulls and steers, wilder than the deer or
bear...I'd like to ask--not insinuating anything if you know where that
three thousand head have gone?"

"Wal, Traft, I shore don't," replied Stone, and he was telling the truth.

"Bambridge could tell me, I'll bet a hundred. He hired someone to rustle
my stock. I don't accuse you, Stone. I know there is more than one gang
in the Tonto Basin. Take the Cibeque outfit, for instance. So if you tell
me straight out that the Hash-Knife didn't rustle my Diamond cattle--why,
I'll believe you."

Then ensued a queer little silence. Stone's men seemed as much concerned
with him as the audacity of this young visitor.

"Wal, thet would be kind of you, Traft, an' I reckon foolish. But I'm not
tellin' my business, one way or another," replied the Hash-Knife leader.

"Which is answer enough for me," returned Traft, with a shrewd, almost
merry twinkle in his clear eyes. "Well my job here is to clean up Yellow
Jacket."

"Uhuh. Clean it up of what?"

"Wild cattle, rattlesnakes, cow-eating grizzlies and cougars, brush and
cactus--and anything else not good for the making of a fine ranch."

"Your Uncle Jim hasn't give you no job atoll," said Stone, with a grin.
"Where's the common sense comin' in?"

"This visit to you is my first move, except ride around below to look for
stock," rejoined the young man, seriously. "I've made up my mind--that if
I live through this job I'll build me a fine, big, roomy log house here
and make this place my home."

"Home!...Marry some Western gal, I reckon?" went on the outlaw, with
interest.

"I've already found her, Stone...No one else than Molly Dunn."

"Molly Dunn!--You don't say? Thet little brown beauty of the Cibeque!
Wal, Traft, I'll say you're a good picker an' a fast mover. I happen to
know Molly. Used to run into her at Enoch Summer's store in West Fork.
Last time scarce a year ago...Me an' Slinger, her brother, was friends
once. She's the prettiest lass an' the best little woman south of Flag."

"Or north, either," said Traft, happily. "Thanks for your compliment.
I'll tell her...And see here, Stone, don't you agree with me that it'd be
pretty tough for me to get killed now or shot up bad--with marriage with
Molly coming next spring?"

"Shore would be for Molly. She never had nothin' but tough luck...If you
feel that way about her, why go lookin' up chances?"

"I'm not. I'm trying to avoid them. But this Yellow Jacket is a fine
ranch. It belongs to me. It's my job. What can I do?"

Stone shook his head as if the problem was a knotty one.

"Now here's another reason I want to--well, keep my health. Ha ha!...My
sister, nineteen years old, arrived in Flag a few weeks ago. Came to make
her home in the West. With me. She's not so well. The doctor thinks
Arizona will make her strong again. So do I. Already she has begun to
improve...She wasn't very happy when she first got here. But that's
passing. Stone, she's a lovely girl. Full of the devil--and, I'm afraid,
stuck up a little--Eastern, you know, but the West will cure her of that,
you bet...Now, she's in my charge, not to say more, and even if there
wasn't a Molly Dunn to make life so sweet, I'd hate like sixty to fail my
sister...So there you are, Jed Stone."

"Thanks. You're shore kind spoken, confidin' in me...It's a hell of a
situation for a young man."

"I wanted you to know exactly how I stand," went on Traft, earnestly.
"I'm not afraid of a fight. I'm afraid when I get into one I almost like
it. But common sense is best. I'm down here to tell you and your outfit
to get out of Yellow Jacket. I want to tell you in a decent way, and that
I appreciate this range has been like your own. But business is business.
You'd do the same...If you don't move off I'll have to try to put you
off. And that's no fair deal. The Diamond, even with Slinger Dunn, is no
match for the Hash-Knife. I may still be a tenderfoot, but I'm no damn
fool. A clash will mean a lot of blood spilled. I'd like to avoid it. Not
only for my own sake, but for my men, and for that matter for you,
too...So I'm putting it up square to you. I can raise ten thousand
dollars. That's my limit. Uncle Jim won't help me buy anybody out. I'll
give you that to move off, fair and square, like the good fellow I
believe you are."

"Traft, I couldn't accept your offer, nohow," returned Stone, pacing the
floor with grave face and intent eyes. He made his last move look casual,
but he did not like the gleam in Croak Malloy's pale eyes, and wanted to
be within reach of the little rattlesnake. Croak did not have to be
stepped upon to show his fangs. "Much obliged to you, but shore I
couldn't take the money. I'll say, though, that Jed Stone ain't the man
to stand in the way of a young fellar like you...I'll get out of Yellow
Jacket for nothin'."

"You will!" cried Traft, in amaze and gladness. "Well, that's darn fine
of you, Stone...Uncle Jim was right. I--I just can't thank you enough."

"Shore you needn't thank me at all."

"Gosh!--" The young man arose in relief and with shining face stepped
forward to offer a hand to Stone. "Shake. I'll always remember you as one
of the big lessons the West has taught me, and already they've been more
than a few."

Stone gripped hands with him, with no other reply. Then Traft moved back
into the sunlight, and halting at the door proceeded to roll a cigarette,
in Western fashion and with deft fingers.

"It'll be great to tell the boys. Good-day and good luck to you,
Stone...And same to your men."

If he had glanced at these men he might not have expressed such goodwill.
As he struck the match and held it to the cigarette there came a ringing
crack of a gun. The match vanished. A bullet thudded into the dark logs.
Traft suddenly changed into a statue, his empty fingers stiff, his face
blanched in a fixed consternation. Then followed another shot. The
cigarette whipped out of his mouth and another bullet thudded into the
wood.

"Them's my compliments, Mister Jim Traft, junior," croaked Malloy, in a
stinging, sarcastic speech full of menace.

Slowly Traft lost his rigidity and turned his head, as if on a pivot, to
fix staring eyes upon the little gunman.

"Good God!--Did you shoot that match--and cigarette?" he exclaimed,
hoarsely.

"Yep. I didn't want to see you leave without somethin' from the rest of
the Hash-Knife," replied Croak, significantly.

"But you--you might have shot me--at least, my hand off!" expostulated
Traft, the white beginning to leave his face for red.

"Me? Haw haw haw!...I hit what I shoot at, an' you can go back an' tell
your Slinger Dunn an' Curly Prentiss thet."

"You--crook-faced little runt!" burst out Traft, furiously.

At this juncture Stone took a noiseless and unobtrusive step closer to
the sitting Malloy.

It had chanced that of all opprobrium, of all epithets which could have
been directed at Croak Malloy, the young rancher had chosen to utter the
worst to inflame the gunman. His lean body vibrated as if a sudden
powerful current had contracted every muscle, and his face flashed with a
hideous deadly light.

As he raised his gun Stone kicked his arm up. The gun went off as it flew
into the air. Malloy let out a bellow of rage and pain, and leaped erect,
holding his numbed arm.

"Croak, I reckoned you'd done shootin' enough for one day," said Stone,
coolly.

The little outlaw had no time to reply. Traft sprang at him and in three
bounds reached him. He was like a whirlwind. One swift hand fastened in
Malloy's shirt and swung him off his feet. The other, doubled into a big
fist, swung viciously the other way round. But it missed Malloy's head by
an inch. He flung the outlaw, who went staggering over the floor to crash
into the door. Traft, light and quick as a cat, was again upon him, even
before he could fall, which he surely was going to do. Traft gave him a
terrific slap alongside the face, which banged his head against the door.
Then he held him there.

"You dirty--little snake!" panted Traft. "You may be a good shot--but
you're a damned yellow--coward."

A hard blow from Traft's right sent Malloy's head with sodden thump
against the door post. The outlaw swayed forward, only to meet Traft's
left swing, which hurtled him through the doorway, out on the ground,
where he rolled clear over and lay still.

Traft stood on the threshold, glaring out. Then he stepped back, produced
another cigarette and match. His fingers shook so he could hardly light
the cigarette. His ruffled hair stood up like a mane. Presently he
turned, to give Stone another thrill. It was something for the outlaw to
look again into furious blazing honest eyes.

"Reckon I was a little previous," he said, in a voice that rang. "All the
same, Stone, I'm wishing you good luck."

As he swept out the door Malloy appeared to be attempting to get up,
emitting a strange kind of grunt. He was on his hands and knees, back to
the cabin. Traft stuck out a heavy boot and gave him a tremendous shove.
The little outlaw plunged face forward and slid into the brush.

Stone stood in the doorway and watched Traft's lithe, erect, forceful
figure disappear in the trees. Then he laid a humorous and most
satisfying gaze upon Malloy. And he muttered, "Somebody will croak
for this, an' I hope it's Malloy."

CHAPTER EIGHT

Jim Traft did not pause in his rapid stride until he had passed through
the walled gateway which permitted egress from Yellow Jacket to the rough
brakes of the basin below. Then he slowed up along the brawling brook,
waiting to compose himself before he arrived at camp. The fire and tumult
within him did not soon die down. "Gosh!" he ejaculated. "I get worse all
the time...I'm going to kill somebody, some day--sure as the Lord made
little apples." And thoughtful review of the experience he had just
passed through in the old Yellow Jacket cabin made him correct his
exclamation by adding, "if I don't get killed myself."

He reached the wall and flung himself down in a sunny spot surrounded by
green on three sides and dominated by the cracked and caverned cliff. If
he was compelled to leave Arizona he would always remember it and cherish
it by pictures in mind of this marvellous Yellow Jacket country. If the
Tonto Basin, the Cibeque Valley, and especially the Diamond Mesa, across
which he had built the now famous drift fence, had fascinated him, what
had this wilderness of canyon and forest done? It brought into expression
some deep, long-latent force of joy. Hours he had spent alone like this,
not worrying over some problem, nor dreaming of Molly--which happened
often enough--but not thinking of anything at all. It was a condition of
mind Jim had not inquired into, because he realised it was pure
happiness, and he feared an analysis would dispel it. And the enchantment
fastened down strong upon him, so that it alternated with a serious
consideration of what he had just passed through at the outlaw camp.

"I've made another blunder," he soliloquised, regretfully. "Stone proved
to be a decent fellow, as Uncle Jim vowed he was...But Stone is not all
of the Hash-Knife. Whew!...That little hatchet-faced ruffian!--Sure he
scared me, and I reckon I wasn't in any danger from his playful bullets.
But, my God! when I cursed him--if Stone hadn't kicked his arm up I'd be
dead now!...That was Croak Malloy, sure as hops. Reckon I'll remember his
face. And any of them. Sure a hard crowd!...They'll probably buck against
Stone about leaving Yellow Jacket. But he struck me as a man who'd be
dangerous to cross...Anyway, I made a good impression on him...I'll put
the matter up to the boys and see what they say."

If Jed Stone did really keep his word and abandon Yellow Jacket, how that
would simplify the big task there! Jim would put the boys to cutting,
peeling, and dragging pine logs down to the site where he wanted to erect
a wonderful house. He had meant to clean up that ragged brushy end of
Yellow Jacket, but after seeing it he had changed his mind. He would not
even tear down the old log cabin where the Hash-Knife outfit had held
forth so long. In time this cabin would become a relic of Arizona's range
days. It would take all winter to cut the logs, rip-saw the boards, split
the shingles, and pack in the accessories for the ranch-house Jim had
planned.

If Stone moved off peacefully and took his men--about whom Jim was most
dubious--then it would be possible for Jim to go back to Flag for
Christmas. What a thrilling idea! It warmed him into a genial glow. But
another thought followed swiftly--the cowboys of his outfit would go back
to Flag also. And that would be terrible. He groaned when he recalled the
Thanksgiving dinner and dance which his Uncle Jim had given in honour of
Gloriana May Traft. It had been a marvellous occasion, attended by
everybody in or around Flagerstown, and something about which the cowboys
raved more and more as time passed. Or it was Gloriana about whom they
raved! What havoc that purple-eyed, white-faced girl had wrought! She had
looked like a princess--and had flirted like a--a--Jim did not know what.
She had even enticed Slinger Dunn to dance--a feat Molly avowed was
without parallel. And she had showed open preference for handsome Curly
Prentiss, which fact had gone to the head of this erstwhile gay and
simple cowboy. He had made life for Bud and Cherry, not to mention the
others, almost insupportable. Yet it all--the whole situation following
that unforgettable dance--was so deliciously funny. All except the
stunned look of Molly's eyes--as Jim recalled it! Molly had not been
jealous, She, too, had been carried away by Gloriana's lovely face and
charming personality. But there was something wrong with Molly. And Jim
had been compelled to leave Flag almost before he realised that the
advent of his sister had brought about some strange change in Molly's
happiness.

Jim had only to recall the last moments he had spent with Molly, her
betrayal of self, her utter devotion, and her passionate love, to which
she was gradually surrendering. These sufficed here, as they had before
in moments of gloom, to lift him buoyantly to the skies again.

At last he got up and wended a devious way toward camp, preoccupied and
tranquil. He was so absent-minded that when Slinger Dunn appeared as if
by magic, right out of the green wall of foliage, he sustained a violent
shock that was not all thrill.

"You darned Injun!" he ejaculated, in relief, "always scaring me stiff."

"Howdy, Boss. I reckon you spend a heap of time heah-aboots--sittin' in
the sun," replied Dunn.

There was no help for it--Jim could not leave camp or approach it, or
hide, or in any way escape the vigilance of this backwoodsman. It rather
pleased Jim, who recognised in it a protective watchfulness. His cowboys
were always concerned, sometimes unduly, when he was absent. And the
acquisition of Slinger Dunn to the outfit had been hailed with loud
acclaim.

Slinger leaned on his rifle and regarded Jim with eyes like Molly's, only
darker and piercing as the points of daggers. He was bareheaded, as he
went usually, and his long hair almost lay upon his shoulders. He wore
buckskin, which apparel singularly distinguished him from the cowboys. In
his backwoods way Slinger was fastidious, or so it seemed. His simple
woodsman's costume partook of the protective hue of foliage and rock,
according to which furnished a background.

"Jim, you look sorta worried," he observed.

"Huh! Small wonder, Slinger."

"How'd Jed treat you?"

"Fine. He's a good fellow, even if he is an outlaw."

"Shore I reckoned you'd like Jed. But I was skeered of Croak Malloy, an'
thet slippery greaser sheepherder."

"I didn't get a line on the Mexican you called Sonora. But, Slinger, I
formed the acquaintance of Mister Malloy, croak and gun and all. I
did!...Wait till we reach camp. I don't want to have to tell it
twice...How are the boys? I swear I'm afraid to leave them alone these
days."

"Hell to pay," grinned Slinger, showing his white teeth, and his black
eyes had a gleam of fun.

"Now what?" demanded Jim, perturbed. "Curly busted Bud one on the nose."
"Oh!...Is that all?"

"Wal, it shore was enough, leastways for Bud."

"Aw, they're pards, the best of friends. They worship each other, even if
they do scrap all the time. What was it about this time?"

"Somethin' aboot Gloriana's laigs," drawled Slinger.

"Wh--hat!" exclaimed Jim, astounded and furious.

"I didn't heah Bud. But you could have heahed Curly a mile. He roared
like a mad bull. An' I near died laffin'. I'll shore have fun tellin'
Gloriana aboot it."

"Oh, the--you will?" queried Jim, constrainedly. Slinger was an entirely
new element in the Diamond outfit and assuredly an unknown quantity. He
was naive to the point of doubt, and absolutely outspoken. "Better tell
me first."

It appeared, presently, that Bud Chalfack, as frank and innocent in his
cowboy way as Slinger was in his backwoods fashion, had been talking
about Gloriana's pretty feet, ankles, and so on, much to Curly's disgust.
And when Bud nonchalantly added that Gloriana was not wholly blind to the
grace and beauty of her nether extremities Curly had taken offence. He
could allow no insult to his young lady friend from the East, and despite
Bud's protest he punched him on the nose.

Jim held himself in until he reached camp. He did not know whether to
explode with wrath or glee. But the incident might prove to have
advantages. Gloriana had upset the outfit; and Jim had found himself at a
loss to combat the situation. He grasped at straws.

The camp site, assuredly the most beautiful Jim had seen, was in a break
of the wall, where a little brown brook ran, crystal clear over stones
and between grassy banks. A few lofty silver spruces lorded it over an
open glade, which the sun touched with gold. Huge blocks of cliff had
fallen and rolled out. Boulders as large as houses stood half-hidden by
pines. Ferns and amber trailing vines coloured the rock wall behind. Camp
paraphernalia lay around in picturesque confusion that suited the
lounging cowboys.

Jim stalked toward the boys. He must maintain tremendous dignity and make
all possible use of this opportunity. Curly got up, his fine face
flushing, and made a halfhearted advance, which he checked. Jim divined
that this young man was not sure of his stand. Bud sat apart,
disconsolate, and nursing a bloody nose.

"What's this Slinger tells me?" Jim demanded, in a loud voice. "You
insulted my sister?"

"Aw no, Boss. Honest t'Gawd I never did," burst out Bud, in distress.

"Is Slinger a liar, then?"

"Yes he is, dog-gone-it, if he says so," retorted Bud.

"And Curly slugged you for nothing?"

"Not egzactly nuthin', Boss," replied Bud. "I--I did say somethin', but I
meant nuthin'."

"Bud Chalfack, did you dare to speak of my sister's legs--here in this
camp of low-down cowboys?" demanded Jim, as he leaned over to jerk Bud to
his feet.

"Aw, Jim. Fer Heaven's sake--listen," begged Bud. "Shore I--I said
somethin', but it was compliment an' no insult."

Jim placed a boot behind Bud and tripped him, spread him on the grass,
and straddling him, lifting a big menacing fist.

"Aw, Jim, don't hit me. I got enough from Curly. An' he cain't hit as
hard as you."

"I'll smash your wagging jaw!"

"I'm sorry, Boss. I--I was jest excited, an' talkin' aboot how pretty
Miss Gloriana is. An' I reckon I was jest seein' if I could rile Curly.
It shore did...I swear I didn't mean nuthin'. An' I apologise."

"What'd you say?" demanded Jim, his fist still uplifted.

"Aw, I forget. It wasn't nuthin' atall."

"Curly, come here," called Jim, sharply, and as the red-faced cowboy
advanced reluctantly Jim went on: "Since you had the gall to constitute
yourself my sister's champion you can tell me just what this blackguard
did say. Don't you dare lie!"

Curly seemed to be in a worse predicament than Bud, though for no
apparent cause, unless it was Jim's great displeasure. He did not look
like the chivalrous defender of a young girl. But presently he got it
out, thereby acquainting Jim with the exact words and nature of Bud's
offence. Jim could have shrieked with glee, though he acted the part of
an avenging Nemesis. Curly was the deceitful one who had taken advantage
of Bud's ravings; and Bud was the innocent victim, scored terribly by
Jim's wrath and a dereliction he could not quite understand.

"Ahuh. So this is the kind of a cowboy you are," shouted Jim, raising his
fist higher. "I'll beat you good, Bud Chalfack...Do you crawfish? Do you
take it back?"

"No--damn' if I do!" cried Bud, righteous anger rising out of his
grief. "You can beat all you want. What I said I said, an' I'll stick to
it...Cause it's true, Jim Traft."

Jim solemnly regarded the prostrate cowboy, while poising aloft the
clenched mace of retribution. Bud's true spirit flashed out. In his code
of honour he had not transgressed. But Jim did not like the familiarity
with which the boys bandied about Gloriana's charms. It was absolutely
inevitable, it was Western and there was not any harm in it;
nevertheless, he was inconsistent enough to see the humour of it and
still resent.

Suddenly an idea occurred to Jim and in an instant he accepted it as a
way of escape out of the dilemma. He certainly had not intended to strike
Bud, unless there was real offence. He released the cowboy and got up.

"Bud, you are hopeless," he said, with pretence of sorrow and
resignation. "No use to beat you! That'd be no adequate punishment. I'll
make you an example...I'll tell Glory what you said about her!"

"Aw--Boss!" gasped Bud.

"I shall, Bud Chalfack. Then we'll see where you get off."

"But, Jim, for Gawd's sake, think! You'd have to tell her Curly punched
me for it. Then I'd be wuss'n a coyote an' he'd be a hero. Thet'd be
orful, Jim, an' you jest cain't be so mean."

"Curly never talked exactly that same way about Gloriana, did he?"

"No, I never heerd him, but I reckon he thinks it, an' more'n thet, too,
you bet."

"Bud, if you admire a girl and must gab about her, why not confine
yourself to her eyes, her hair, or mouth? Couldn't you be satisfied to
say her eyes were like wells of midnight, her hair spun gold, and her
lips sweet as red cherries?"

"Hell yes, I could. But I never swallered no dictionary. An' dog-gone-it,
any bootiful girl has more'n eyes an' hair an' lips, hasn't she?"

"Nevertheless, I shall tell Gloriana," returned Jim, inexorably.

"Boss, I'll take the beatin'," implored Bud.

"No, you won't, Bud. You'll take your medicine. And pretty soon, too.
We're all going back to Flag for Christmas. Jed Stone agreed to get off
Yellow Jacket and that leaves us free, for the present, anyway."

"Whoop-ee!" yelled the outfit, in a united chorus.

Only Bud was not radiant. "I'll get drunk an' disgrace the outfit," he
avowed.

"Listen, men, and tell me what you make of this deal," said Jim, and
seating himself on a pack while the cowboys gathered around, he began a
detailed account of his visit to the Hash-Knife outfit. He took longer
than usual in the telling of an incident, because he wanted to be
specific and not to omit a single impression. When he had finished there
was a blank silence, rather perturbing. At length Slinger Dunn broke it:

"My Gawd! Boss, you're as good as daid!" he ejaculated, with the only
expression of concern Jim had ever seen on his dark impressive face.

Curly Prentiss broke out: "Jim! You've slugged the dangerousest gunman in
Arizona!"

One by one the others vented similar opinions, until only Bud was left to
express himself.

"Boss, you're a tenderfoot, same as when you come West," declared that
worthy. "You cain't be trusted with a job like thet. Didn't I ast to go?
Didn't I tell you to take Curly? You dod-blasted jackass! Now you've
played hell!"

"So it appears," returned Jim, sober-faced.

"If you'd only shot Malloy when you had the chanct," said Slinger,
moodily.

"But I didn't pack a gun," expostulated Jim, "I went unarmed so that I
couldn't shoot anybody."

"Wal, Boss, you shore made another mistake," spoke up Curly. "Jed Stone
is square. He'll keep his word. But he's only the brains of the
Hash-Knife. Croak Malloy haids the gun end of thet outfit. An' if he
doesn't shoot up Arizona now, I'll miss my guess."

"Well, it's too late. I'm sorry. I sure was mad. And I'd have slammed
that dirty little rat around if it was the last thing on earth...But
let's get our heads together. What'll we do? Slinger, you talk first."

"Better lay low an' wait while I watch the trails. Jed will go, but he
might go alone. An' I'm shore tellin' you if he goes alone the Hash-Knife
will be ten times wuss'n ever."

"I reckon he'll get off Yellow Jacket an' persuade the outfit to follow,"
said Curly. "Stone is a persuasive cuss, I've heahed men say. An' Yellow
Jacket is cleaned out of cattle. They've made way with your Diamond
stock, Jim, an' once more you're a poor cowboy. Haw haw!"

"They're welcome to my stock, if they only vamoose," returned Jim,
fervently.

"Boss, they shore ain't welcome to the half of thet stock you gave me,"
declared Dunn, darkly. "I was pore, an' all of a sudden I felt rich. An'
now--"

"Slinger, you still have your half interest in what cattle are left and
what I'll drive in," replied Jim. "My uncle won't see us left stripped."

"Wal, thet's different," said Slinger, brightening.

"You stay off the war-path, you darned redskin," interposed Curly. "We're
shore goin' to need you...Now, Boss, heah's the deal in a nutshell, as I
see it. An' I know these rustlin' outfits. Jed Stone will change his
base. But he won't get out of the brakes. There's rich pickin' on the
range below. The Hash-Knife will hide down heah, an' then go to operatin'
big an' bold. Stone will throw thet outfit down or I don't read the signs
correct. An' as Slinger says, then the Hash-Knife will be worse. Somebody
will have to kill Malloy or we cain't do any ranchin' in these parts.
Shore everythin' will be quiet till spring."

Jim maintained a long, thoughtful silence. He respected Curly Prentiss's
judgement, and could not recall an instance when it had been wrong. Curly
was young, but old in range wisdom. Then his intelligence and education
were far above that of the average cowboy.

"Very well," finally said Jim. "We'll stick close to camp, with two
guards out day and night. Slinger will watch the Hash-Knife gang and
report. So until then I guess we'll have to play mumblypeg."

Two lazy idle yet watchful days passed. Slinger did not return until long
after dark of the second day, so long that it took persuasion by Curly to
allay Jim's anxiety. Slinger came in with Uphill Frost, who had been on
guard down the trail and who had missed the supper hour.

"The Hash-Knife gang is gone," announced Frost, loudly. "I seen the whole
caboodle ride by, an' I damn near took a peg at thet Croak Malloy."

"What--You sure, Up?" shouted Jim, leaping excitedly to his feet.

"Yep. I wisht I was as sure of heaven. It was aboot two o'clock this
afternoon. I'd come back sooner, but Slinger slipped up on me an' told me
to wait till he got back. There was eight of 'em an' they had a string of
pack-horses."

"Slinger, where'd they go?" asked Jim, breathlessly.

"I followed them ten miles, an' when I turned back they were travellin',"
returned Dunn. "To-morrer I'll take a hoss. I reckon they're makin' fer
the Black Brakes."

"How far is that?"

"Aboot twenty miles as the crow flies."

"Too close for comfort."

"Boss, I sneaked up almost within earshot of the cabin," went on Dunn.
"Fust off this mawnin' I seen the greaser Sonora wranglin' their hosses.
An' as he's the only one of thet outfit I'm skeered of I went up the
crick an' crawled up in the brush. I got close enough to heah voices, but
not what they said. Shore was a hell of a argyment, though. They'd pack
awhile, then fight awhile. Reckon I didn't need to heah. All as plain as
tracks to me. Malloy kicked on quittin' Yellow Jacket an' most of the
outfit was with him. But Stone was too strong. An' along aboot noon they
rode off."

"Yippy-yip!" yelled Jim, in wild elation. "Gone without a scrap. Gosh!
but I'm glad."

"Boss, you shore air previous," spoke up Bud, with sarcasm. "Thet
Hash-Knife gang hey only rid off aways to hide till you throw up a fine
big cabin. Then they'll come back an' take it away from you."

"They will like--h-hob," stammered Jim.

"Thet'll be like Malloy," admitted Slinger. "I'm afeered they went off
too willin'."

"Shore is aboot the deal to expect," chimed in Curly, cheerfully. "But
life is short in Arizona an' who knows?--Malloy may croak before spring."

"Curly Prentiss, you've somethin' on your mind," declared Jim, darkly.

"Humph! It's only curly hair an' sometimes a sombrero," said Bud.

"Shore. I'm a thoughtful cuss. Always reckonin' fer my friends an' my
boss."

"An' your next sweetheart."

"Bud, old pard, for me there'll never be no next one."

"Boys, we'll build the house," interposed Jim, with decision that
presupposed heretofore he had been only dreaming. "Jeff, we'll break camp
at daylight. Better pack some tonight. We'll hit the trail for Yellow
Jacket. Gosh! I'm glad! ... We'll keep Slinger on watch, and the rest of
us will cut, peel, an' make pine poles out of the woods."

"Swell job for genuine cowpunchers," observed Bud, satirically.

"I've ridden all over Yellow Jacket, Jim," spoke up Curly. "Some years
ago. But shore there's timber to build a town. Grandest place for a
ranch! It'd be tough to spend a lot of coin on it, an' work a good outfit
to death, an' haul in stuff to make a nice home, an' fetch your little
Western bride down fer your honeymoon--an' then stop one of Croak
Malloy's bullets...Shore would be tough!"

"Curly, you're a blamed pessimist," burst out Jim. "Don't you ever have
any dreams?"

"Me? Never once in my life," drawled Curly.

"Boss, he's dreamin' now--an' if you knowed what it's aboot you'd punch
him on his handsome nose," said Bud, revengefully.

"Bud, you surprise me," rejoined Jim, mildly. Then he advised the outfit
to turn in and be up at daylight.

Jim rode through the colourful rock-wall gateway of Yellow Jacket,
imagining himself Vercingetorix riding his black stallion at the head of
his army into one of the captured cities.

On his hurried visit to Jed Stone he had scarcely noted details of this
wild and beautiful retreat. But now he had eyes for everything.

"Wal, we'll shore have hell cuttin' a road in heah," Curly was observing.
"Reckon it'll have to be at the up end of the canyon."

The trail wound among big sycamores and spruces, a remarkable combination
for contrast, of green and white and silver, and of gold. The brook
brawled between mossy banks of amber moss, and at the ford it was deep
enough and swift enough to make the horses labour.

"Cain't cross heah in a spring an' fall freshet, that's shore," went on
Curly. "By golly! this place gets under my skin."

Blocks of red and yellow rock lay scattered beyond the gateway, with tall
pines and spruces shading them, except in occasional grassy open sunlit
nooks. The grey walls converged from the gate, sculptured by nature into
irregular and creviced ramparts, festooned with bright-red vines and
bronze lichens, and with ledges supporting little spruces, and with crags
of every shape lifting weathered tops to the fringe of pines on the rim.

There was a long slow ascent thinning from forest to park-like ground, up
to the old cabin. Indeed, Jim meant to preserve this relic of rustler and
outlaw days.

"What's thet white thing stuck on the door? Looks like paper to me,"
said the sharp-eyed Bud.

Curiously they rode up to the cabin, dismounting one by one. Jim saw a
dirty page of a lined note-book pegged into the rotten woodwork of the
door. Upon it was scrawled in a crude, but legible hand-writing, the word
"Mariana". And under it had been drawn the rude sketch of a hash-knife,
somehow compelling and suggestive.

"Clear as print," replied Curly, tersely. "Wal, heah's four bits thet
Croak Malloy left thet," added Slinger.

"Well?" demanded Jim, somewhat impatiently.

"Boss, yore mind's so full of ranch an' house an'--wal, an' so forth thet
it ain't workin'," explained Bud. "Mariana means to-morrer. An' the knife
says they'll come back pronto to make hash out of us."

"Oh, is that all?" returned Jim, with a laugh. "Bud, life does not seem
very bright and hopeful for you just now."

"Hell no! I got brains an' six-sense eyesight," replied the gloomy
cowboy.

"We'll throw the packs under the pine trees there. No sleeping in that
buggy cabin for me," said Jim. "Jeff, I'd rather you didn't cook here
unless it storms. You can build a fireplace under the extension roof
there...Say, there's an open-roofed extension at the back too. Used
for horses. Well, here we are. Let's rustle. Slinger, your job is to use
your eyes."

"Boss, there's two holes to this burrow," spoke up Bud.

"Where's the other?"

"Reckon it's aboot three miles west, where the canyon boxes," replied
Curly, pointing. "Higher an' not so rough. If I recollect, the trail
grades down easy. We'll cut the road through there. It'll take some
blastin'."

"We'll take a chance on that end," said Jim. "Bud, I tell you what you
can do. While we pitch camp you ride up and find the best place to cut
our poles. But remember, it must be back in the woods, out of sight. No
defacing the beauty of this property!"

"Funny how some fellars are," observed Bud, philosophising. "Beooty first
an' last, an' always in wimmen."

Then he rode away. Jim gazed after him in perplexity. "What's wrong with
Bud?" he asked.

"His nose an' his feelin's are hurt," replied Cherry Winters.

"You forgot, Boss. You swore you'd give him away," drawled Curly. "An'
the poor kid is in love. I've seen him like this sixty-nine times."

Jim set the outfit to work, and had no small hand in the cutting and
trimming of pine poles. Bud had located a fine stand of long straight
trees, growing so close together that there was scarcely any foliage
except at the top. This particular grove would benefit by a good thinning
out. The peeling of the green bark was no slight task. Some of the boys
proved adept at that.

Ten days of uninterrupted labour followed. Slinger Dunn had trailed the
Hash-Knife outfit to Black Brakes, the very retreat to which he had
surmised they would go; and according to him they had stayed there, or at
least had not ridden north on the trail toward Yellow Jacket. When Jim
allowed himself to think of it he was vastly concerned. The prospect of a
ranch and a home within twenty miles of the hardest and most notorious
gang in Arizona was almost unthinkable. They would have to be dealt with.
Nevertheless Jim nursed a conviction that Jed Stone would turn out to be
the kind of man Uncle Jim had vowed he was. To be sure, all Jim had to
substantiate such faith was the fact of Stone's leaving Yellow Jacket, and
an undefinable something Jim felt.

One night Jim overheard Curly and Bud talking. It was late, the fire had
died down so that it cast only ruddy flickering shadows, and no doubt the
boys thought Jim was sound asleep. Bud had seemed more like his true self
lately, and had forgiven the blow on his nose and the affront to his
vanity. He worshipped Curly like a brother.

"It's a fool job, I tell you, Curly," Bud was saying, almost in a
whisper. "Like as not Malloy will burn this pile of logs while we're in
Flag."

"Shore he will, or more like wait till the house is half up," agreed
Curly. "But, dog-gone-it, Bud, I cain't go against the boss. He has a way
of makin' me soft. Shore as hell he'll stop my drinkin'. I'm jest
a-rarin' fer a bust. It's due in Flag this heah trip, an' honest to God,
Bud, I'll be afraid to take a drink."

"I feel the same, but I'm gonna get orful drunk onct more or die
tryin'...Curly, if you don't watch out Jim will argue you or coax you to
stop gun-throwin'. An' then you'll be slated for a quiet rest under a
pine tree!"

"Uh-ugh. I practise just the same as ever, Bud, only on the sly."

"Wal, I'm glad. If I don't miss my bet we're gonna need some
gun-throwin'. Slinger don't like this 'possum-playin' of the Hash-Knife.
He knows. Curly, what do you think? Slinger was tellin' me he reckoned he
oughta dog them rustlers, an' pick them off one at a time, with a rifle."

"Slinger cain't do thet, no more than I could. Shore I'm not Injun
enough. But you know what I mean. What'd you say, Bud?"

"I ast him why he oughta. An' he said for Molly's sake."

"Shore. The same thing worries me a lot. I never seen a girl love a
fellar like she loves Jim. Dog-gone! It'd shore be...Wal, Croak Malloy
will shoot Jim the first time he lays eyes on him, no matter where."

"Curly, I agree with you. Croak would. But I bet you Slinger gets to him
first. Because, Curly, old pard, our backwoods cowboy is turrible in love
with Gloriana May. Did you get thet?"

Curly swore surprisingly for him, and not under his breath by any means.

"Not so loud. You'll wake up somebody," admonished Bud, in a fierce
whisper.

"Shore he is, Bud," admitted Curly. "But thet's nothin'. I've lost my
haid. So've you, an' all the boys. The hell of it is Glory is in love
with Slinger."

"Wow! You are out of your haid. He amuses Glory--fascinates her, mebbe,
'cause she's crazy aboot desperadoes, but thet's all, pard," returned
Bud, with all the heart-warming loyalty of his nature.

"Shore sounds queer--for me to say that aboot Glory," went on Curly.
"Lord knows I mean no disrespect. She's a thoroughbred. But, Bud, jest
consider. She's an Easterner. She's young. She's full of sentiment an'
romance. An' she's had some kind of trouble. Deep. An' it's hurt her.
Wal, this damn Slinger Dunn is far better-lookin' than any of us--than
any cowpuncher I ever seen. He's a wonderful chap. Bud. If I wasn't so
jealous of him that I want to shoot him in the back--I--I'd love him
myself. It wouldn't be so strange for a girl like Glory to fall haid over
heels in love with him. An', honest, I'm scared so I'm afraid to go to
Flag."

"Nonsense. Any damn fool could hev seen you had the inside track with
Glory. Sure, if you back out an' show yellow, Slinger, or somebody else,
will beat you. Don't you think I'm backin' out. I reckon Glory couldn't
see me with a spy-glass, but I'm in the race an' I got a flyin' start.
When I raved aboot Slinger havin' her picture she gave me one, an' a darn
sight newer an' prettier than his."

Curly swore again. "Wal, can you beat thet? Shore she wouldn't give one
to me...Women are no good, Bud."

"I wouldn't say it's thet bad, Curly," replied Bud. "They're damn hard to
figger. I reckon Glory jest likes me. Why, she laughs an' cuts up with
me. She's sorta shy with you."

"Shy nothin'. Shore I haven't seen her a lot of times--that is, to talk
to. Twice at the corral--three times in the livin'-room, when I went in
to see Jim--once at Babbitt's store--an' at the dance. That was the best.
My Gawd! I cain't get back my breath...But, she was only curious aboot my
gun-play. It makes me sick as a dog to remember the fights I've been in,
let alone talk aboot them. But she kept at me till I got mad. Then she
froze an' said she guessed I wasn't much of a desperado, after all."

"Haw haw!" laughed Bud, low and mellow. "Curly, what thet little lady
needs is a dose of Croak Malloy."



CHAPTER NINE

Jim blazed a road out of Yellow Jacket. His authority was not questioned
by any one of the cowboys, but his ability as an engineer certainly was.

"You gotta drive wagons up this grade," asserted Bud, repeatedly. "You
wasn't so pore runnin' a straight-line drift fence, but this hyar's a
different matter. You don't savvy grades."

"All right, Bud. Maybe I'm not so darn smart as I think I am," replied
Jim, laying a trap for Bud. "Suppose we go back and run it all over. You
can be the engineer. That'll cut two days off our Christmas vacation in
Flag. Too bad, but that road must be right."

The howl that went up from the Diamond was vociferous and derisive, and
it effectually disposed of Bud.

"Aw, Boss, mebbe it ain't. I reckon it'll work out--an' any little grade
can be eased up after," he rejoined, meekly.

Twenty miles on through the slowly ascending forest they struck a cattle
trail which afforded good travel, and in due course led them to the
Payson road, and eventually the ranch where they had left the
chuck-wagon. They stayed there all night, and the following night camped
at the edge of the snow, only one more day's ride to Flag.

Next afternoon late a tired, cold, dirty, unshaven, but happy group of
cowboys rode into town, and there they separated. Jim had reasons to
shake Curly and Bud, and they manifested no great desire to continue on
with him.

Flagerstown was windy and bleak. The snow had been shovelled or had blown
off the streets, down which piercing dusty gusts whipped in Jim's face.
But it would have taken an unfaceable blizzard or an impassable prairie
fire to have daunted Jim's soaring spirits. He had two important errands
before rushing out to the ranch, and he did not want them to take long,
for his horse was pretty warm. Dismounting in front of the jeweller's,
Jim hurried in. The proprietor, with whom Jim had left an order, was not
in, but his son was, a young Westerner whom Jim did not like.

"Mr. Miller in?" he asked.

"No. Father's out of town. But I can wait on you...The diamond ring is
here--if you still want it," returned the young man.

Jim stared. What in the devil did this nincompoop mean?

"Certainly I want it. I paid in advance. Let me have it, quick, please,"
retorted Jim.

The jeweller produced a little white box, from which glistened a
beautiful diamond. Tim took it, trying to be cool, but he was burning and
thrilling all over. Molly's engagement ring! It was a beauty--pretty big
and valuable, he thought, now he actually saw what he had ordered. Molly
would be surprised. She did not even know Jim had ordered it. And sight
of her eyes, when they fell upon it, would be worth ten times the price.

"Thanks. I reckon it's all right. I was careful about size," said Jim,
and pocketing the ring he strode out to his horse, which he led down the
street. "Funny look that gazabo gave me," he soliloquised, thoughtfully,
and he dismissed the incident by admitting to himself he must have been
rather amusing to the clerk. Then he went into Babbitt's, where he had
left another order, for a Christmas present for his uncle, and one for
Molly. Securing the packages, which were rather large and heavy, and
which he did not trouble to open, he hurried out through the store. In
the men's furnishing department a bright-red silk scarf caught his eye,
and he swerved to the counter.

"I'd like that red scarf," he said to the girl clerk, "and a pair of
buckskin gloves."

The girl neither spoke nor moved. Then Jim looked at her--and there stood
Molly Dunn, with white and agitated face. Jim was perfectly
thunderstruck. Could he be dreaming? But Molly's gasp, "Oh--Jim!" proved
this was reality.

"What--what does this mean?" he stammered.

"I'm workin' heah, Jim," she whispered. "Mawnin's I go to school an'
afternoons I'm heah."

"For Heaven's sake! A clerk in Babbitt's?" he exclaimed.

"Di--didn't you--get my letter?" she faltered, her eyes unnaturally large
and frightened.

"Letter? No, I didn't. How could I get a letter when I've been three
weeks in the woods?"

"I--I left it--with your uncle."

"Molly, I just rode in. Haven't been home. What's wrong? Why are you
here?" Jim leaned against the counter, fighting to check the whirl of his
thoughts. Molly's eyes suddenly expressed a poignant dismay.

"Oh, Jim--I'm so sorry--you had to come in heah--not knowin'," she cried,
piteously. "I wouldn't have hurt you...But I--I've left your home...I've
broke our engagement."

"Molly!" he ejaculated, in hoarse incredulity.

"It's true, Jim...But you mustn't stand there..."

"Why, for God's sake--" he burst out.

"Please go, Jim. I--I'll see you later--an' tell you--"

"No. You can tell me here why you jilted me," he interrupted, harshly.

"Missouri--I--I didn't," she said, huskily, tears streaming down her
cheeks.

"Was Gloriana mean to you?" Jim suddenly demanded.

"She was lovely to me. Kind an' sweet. An' she--she tried to meet me
on my own level--so I wouldn't see the difference be--between us...but
I did. I--I wasn't fit to be her sister. I shore wasn't goin' to disgrace
you. So I--I left an' come heah to work. Mother went back home to the
Cibeque."

"You swear Glory didn't hurt you?"

"No, Jim, I cain't swear thet. But she never hurt me on purpose. There's
nothin' mean aboot your sister...I just loved her--an' thet made it
worse."

"Molly Dunn, you're a damn little fool," exploded Jim, overcome by a
frenzy of pain and fury. "You were good enough for any man, let alone
me...But if you're as fickle--as that--"

Jim choked, and gathering up his packages he gave Molly a terrible look
and rushed out of the store.

In an ordinary moment he could not have mounted his horse, burdened as he
was, but he leaped astride, scarcely feeling the weight of the packages.
And he spurred Baldy into a run, right down the main street of
Flagerstown. The violence of action suited the violent tumult in his
breast. But by the time he reached the ranch-house the furious anger had
given way somewhat to consternation and a stunned surprise. That simple,
honest, innocent child! But even so she might be protecting Gloriana. Jim
left his horse at the barn, and taking his bundles he ran into the house
and into the living-room, bursting in upon the old cattleman like a
hurricane.

"Jim! Good Lord! I thought it was Injuns," exclaimed Traft. "Wal, I
expected you along soon. How are you, son?"

"Howdy, Uncle!" replied Jim, throwing aside his bundles and meeting the
glad hand extended. "I was fine, till I struck town...Glad to report the
Hash-Knife got off Yellow Jacket without a fight."

"Jim Traft!--You're not foolin' the old man?"

"No, I'm happy to say. It's a fact, Uncle."

"Wal!--You long-headed, big-fisted tenderfoot son-of-a-gun from
Mizzouri!...Jim, I'm clear locoed. I'm dead beat. I'm--wal, I don't know
what. How'n hell did you do it?"

"I went straight to see Jed Stone."

"You braved thet outfit?" yelled Traft.

"Sure. Jed Stone was sure decent. He agreed to get out. But Croak Malloy
shot a match out of my fingers, then the cigarette out of my mouth. I
sure was mad. I cussed him--called him a crooked-faced little runt. He'd
shot at me then, but Stone kicked his gun. It went off in the air. Then I
piled into Croak. I banged him around then knocked him about a mile out
of the door. He was trying to get up when I went out, and I gave him a
good stiff kick, and left."

"My Gawd!--Son, don't tell me you punched thet gunman, same as these
cowboys?" ejaculated Traft.

"I reckon I did, Uncle. It was foolish, of course. But I was mad. And I
didn't know then that the little runt was Malloy. It mightn't have made
any difference."

"Croak Malloy! Beat and kicked around by a Mizzouri tenderfoot!...Jim, my
boy, you're as good as dead," wailed the old rancher.

"Don't you believe it," retorted Jim. "And how long do I have to serve as
a tenderfoot...Well, no more about the Hash-Knife now. We moved up to
Yellow Jacket and went to cutting poles. And on our way out we blazed a
line out to the road. After the holidays we'll go back, and by spring be
ready--"

Suddenly it dawned upon him that something had happened which made the
home-building at Yellow Jacket a useless and superfluous task. His heart
contracted and sank like cold lead.

"Wal, you're an amazin' youngster," said Traft, with his keen blue eyes
full of admiration and pride. "You scare me, though. I reckon it's a more
Christian thing to slug a man than to shoot him. You 'pear to have a
hankerin' to use your fists. I heard aboot your hittin' Bambridge in the
station at Winslow. You never told me that, you sly young dog. Didn't
want to worry your old uncle, huh?...Wal, I can see you've more on your
mind. An' I'll wait to hear aboot Bambridge, the Hash-Knife deal, an'
Yellow Jacket."

"Uncle, I ran into Babbitt's, and there, behind a counter, was Molly,"
burst out Jim, and the mere telling of it aloud causing a regurgitation
of fierce emotions. "She's broken our engagement...She's gone to
work...I'm stunned."

"Jim, don't take it too hard," replied the old rancher, soothingly.
"Don't imagine it a permanent break. Why, she done it because she loves
you so much. She came to me an' told me, Jim. How she wasn't good enough
for you--she hadn't the courage to marry you--your family would stick up
their noses at her, an' all that sort of thing. I tried to argue her out
of goin'. But she's a stubborn little minx. Independent, an' proud, too,
in her way. So I jest told her thet you'd understand, but you'd never
take her at her word. She cried at thet. Jim, she couldn't hold out
against you for five minutes. So don't let it break you all up."

"My word, Uncle, but you're a lifesaver," replied Jim, with intense
relief. "It's bad enough, Lord knows, but if there's any hope I can stand
it. Do you think Glory made it hard for Molly?"

"Wal, I reckon she did," said Traft, seriously. "An' all the time she
was tryin' to put poor Molly at her ease. But she couldn't. An' that'll
never come until Molly gets Glory on her own ground. Then there'll be a
balance struck. Glory an' I have got on fine, Jim. She's a comfort to me,
an' has been confidin' a little of her troubles at home. I reckon we'll
never let her go back."

"No, we'll keep her out West. Uncle, how is she? Has her health
improved?"

"Wal, Glory's got thet bad cough yet, an' she gains but slow. I reckon
she has improved. It'll take summer an' outdoors among the pines an'
cedars to make her strong again. Suppose you hunt her up. Then after
supper you can get the rest off your chest."

"All right, Uncle, but just one word more," returned Jim, eagerly. "You
tell me not to fear a permanent break with Molly. When she's made it,
already! I'm sick. I'm dumbfounded. I was so furious I called her a damn
little fool."

"So she is. An' thet won't hurt your cause none. Now, Jim, don't fall
into this broken-heart cowboy style an' go to drinkin'. I tell you Molly
worships the ground you walk on. An' if I was you I'd jest go an' pack
her back home here to the ranch."

"Pack her?" echoed Jim, aghast.

"Shore. She won't come willin', not very soon. So I'd jest fetch her back
by force. A good spankin' wouldn't do no harm. But I reckon you haven't
nerve enough for thet. Molly has given the town people lots to gossip
about. Glory will tell you. An' you in turn can give them somethin' to
gossip about."

"Ahuh...Thanks, Uncle," rejoined Jim, soberly. "I'll consider your
advice. It appeals to me, especially the spanking part."

Jim left the living-room, absent-mindedly fingering the ring box in his
pocket. He did not take all his uncle had said as absolute gospel, but it
surely checked the riot of his feelings. Then he knocked at Gloriana's
door.

"Who's there?" she called, in rather a startled voice.

Some devil beset Jim, perhaps the besetting sin of his joke-loving
cowboys, and without reflection he announced in a gruff voice:

"Darnell."

He heard an exclamation, followed by quick footsteps, and a sudden
locking of the door.

"You nagging scoundrel!" called Gloriana, her voice ringing. "The nerve
of you! I'm sick of your chasing after me. Get out of this house or I'll
scream for my uncle. You'll reckon with Jim and his cowboys for the way
you've treated me."

Jim was thunderstruck again, though in a vastly different way.

"Oh, Glory," he cried, "it's only Jim. I thought I was being funny."

"Jim!"

"Sure. Don't you know my voice? I just rode in. Had a word with Uncle and
here I am."

"Are you--alone?" she asked, fumbling at the lock.

Wherewith she opened the door to disclose a lovely though most agitated
countenance. Jim went in, stricken at the scare he had evidently given
her.

"Glory, I'm darn sorry. I don't know what possessed me--to think of that
fellow Darnell. Please forgive me."

"Have you heard--anything?" she asked, searching his face with darkly
troubled eyes.

"About Darnell? I think I did hear that name. Before I left for Yellow
Jacket. But I only just got back. Saw Molly!...Imagine my luck! I ran in
Babbitt's--and almost fell over her. We had a few words, sister...Then I
came home. Saw Uncle for a minute...Aren't you glad to see me?"

"You great big handsome hairy--bear!" she cried, breathlessly. "You look
like a tramp. You smell like horses and smoke...Oh, Jim, I'm so glad to
see you!"

"We're square on that, then," he said. "Come to the fire. Gee! I'm nearly
frozen. I've been so knocked out I hardly knew it was cold. Let me look
at you."

"Well, what's your verdict?" she asked, meeting his gaze with a wistful
smile. Gloriana's eyes had the inscrutable quality of beauty that was a
blending of purple hue and a light which anyone might well mistake. But
Jim saw deeper, and he was satisfied.

"I couldn't ask more. You're on the mend."

"Jim, I was fine until that damned Darnell turned up here in Flag," she
replied. "I told you he would. It was a couple of weeks ago. But I found
out before I saw him. He came here--coaxed and threatened. I told him I
would have absolutely nothing more to do with him. He has bobbed up
every time I went downtown, to stores, post-office, everywhere.
Finally I stayed home. And you bet I was angry when I took you for him."

"What's he doing out here, Glory?" asked Jim.

"He followed me. But he'll have more than one string to his bow. Said he
had gone to work for a rancher named Bambridge--"

"Oh, I remember now," interrupted Jim, "I saw him that day at the
station. So your erstwhile beau has thrown in with Bambridge?
Interesting--and funny."

"Jim, it's not funny to me," she spoke up, hurriedly. "I'm afraid of
Darnell. He's a two-faced slicker. But he has become acquainted in town.
He's already popular with the girls. I'm deathly afraid."

"Of what?" laughed Jim. He was in fact a little amused at the way he
found his Western development disposed of Mr. Darnell.

"He'll talk about me--disgrace you, hurt you in Flag."

"Talk about you, will he? Glory, what do you suppose Curly Prentiss or
Slinger Dunn would do--if he so much as spoke one slighting word of you?"

"I--I can't imagine, Jim," she replied, her great eyes dilating.

"Well, it will be funny--unless I get to him first...Glory dear, this
Darnell has no claim on you?"

"No, Jim, on my honour," she replied.

"Then dismiss him from your mind. He has struck the wrong place to hound
a girl."

"I'm afraid he'll wheedle Uncle out of money," went on Gloriana, slowly
yielding to relief.

"Ha ha! That's funny. He can't do it, Glory. He's not slick enough.
Besides, he has gotten in with the wrong rancher. Bambridge is a cattle
thief. We know it, and we can prove it presently. Darnell will have to
step mighty slow and careful. Have you had any other trouble, sister?
Come out with it."

"Yes, with Molly. Jim, she's the sweetest kid. Honestly, I just fell in
love with her. But I made a tactless start. I wanted only to help her.
She misunderstood. She thought I was stuck up, and she got the idea she
wasn't good enough for you. When she told me she was leaving here I
begged and I scolded. I talked sense to her. I argued myself hoarse. I
was sincere, too. Only she imagined me afraid of you and lying to her.
Then I lost my temper--I have one, if you remember, Jim--and I--well, I
made it worse by telling her how lucky she was--that you meant to marry
her...But she has a will of her own. She left. And I haven't been able to
get her back. I've been to that store I don't know how many times. Then I
heard Molly had met Darnell--one of the Flag girls, Elsie Roberts, told
me. And she went to a dance with him. I--"

"Molly went to a dance with this Darnell?"

"Yes, she did. But, Jim, you mustn't hold it against her," entreated
Gloriana. "She's only a child. I went right downtown and told Molly who
and what Darnell was. She didn't believe me. Darnell is attractive and
smooth. She doesn't care a rap for him, because she worships you, Jim.
But in her present state of mind she'd do anything. And Darnell is
dangerous and unscrupulous. If I had not been pretty wise--despite my
infatuation--he'd have ruined me. You mustn't lose any time getting Molly
out of his clutches."

"My God!...Do I want her?" groaned Jim, dropping his head.

"Yes, you want her. So do I. And so does Uncle Jim. Molly is a treasure.
No matter what she does, you must stand it, bear with her, and get her
back."

Jim raised his head to kiss Gloriana gratefully. "Thanks, Glory. You
couldn't have said anything that would mean so much to me. I love that
kid. It'd kill me to lose her...But Uncle Jim bucked me up, and now so
have you...Here's her engagement ring. Isn't it a beauty?"

Gloriana looked at the jewel with eyes that sparkled like it.

"She wouldn't be human if that didn't fetch her...But, Jim, Molly is
Western. Diamonds might mean nothing at all to her. Still, I know she
loves pretty clothes. She told me she went in debt for a new dress to
wear at the Christmas dance."

"Molly certainly must be human and wholly feminine," said Jim, with a
tinge of bitterness. "In love with me last month--engaged to me. Now
she's going to a dance with another fellow. I call it pretty raw."

"She wrote you--begged Uncle Jim to send it by a rider. But Uncle
wouldn't do it...And Molly is just wild with regret and pain and wounded
love. Any girl is in peril under a mood of that kind. She wants the town
people to believe she's no good, so that they can't think she jilted you.
It's a sad little story, Jim. But now you're here it will be all right. I
know it, Jim, unless you're an utter jealous fool. Trust me. I know
girls. Molly only needs to learn that you do love her for herself and
that neither you, nor I, nor anyone could be ashamed of her--to be the
sweetest and happiest girl in the world. That's your job, brother mine.
And it beats building the drift fence."

"Glory, I can prove it--with you and Uncle to help. Gosh! I feel as if a
mountain had been lifted off my heart...Now what festivities are in order
for the holidays?"

"Oh, Flag is quite a social place," laughed Gloriana. "But the dance
Christmas Eve, and the party here on the following Wednesday night, are
the outstanding events. Uncle is giving that for Molly. She, of course,
thinks it's off because she left. But Uncle says no. Wait till Jim
comes."

"It's not off, Glory," declared Jim, grimly. "Molly will be here if I
have to pack her."

"Romantic, to say the least," replied Gloriana, with a trill of laughter.
"I approve...And now, Jim, tell me about Slinger and Curly. And don't
forget Bud. He's a dear."

"Your Three Guardsmen, eh?" rejoined Jim, dryly. "They've managed to live
together without actual murder. Slinger looks at his rivals and listens
in silent contempt, as down upon lesser men who did not share his secret
of power."

Because of the whiteness of Gloriana's face even a little wave of colour
appeared a startling blush.

"Do they talk about me, among themselves?" she asked, a little confused.

"For three weeks you have shared conversation honours with the
Hash-Knife."

"How flattering! And what do they say?"

"I've forgotten most of it. At first I got kind of sore. They talked
right out before me, with the utmost candour. They were all going to
marry you, I gathered. To be sure, murder must be committed. It was
funny. You should have been around to listen."

"They are the most amusing fellows--just fascinating to me."

"So I've gathered. Well, dearest, out West you reap as you sow...One day
I came back to camp and found Bud with a bloody nose. Curly, his pard,
his almost brother, had punched him for talking about your legs."

"What-at!" gasped Gloriana.

"Sure. I ascertained that Bud said you had pretty legs and you knew it.
Curly took that as an insult and bloodied Bud's nose. When I got there
Bud was nursing his nose and his wounded vanity. I thought it a good
opportunity for an object lesson, so I pretended tremendous anger, when
really I wanted to split with laughter. I threw Bud down on the grass,
straddled him, and threatened to smash his face unless he recognised his
offence, apologised, and took it back. Do you know, Glory, he couldn't
see any offence, although he apologised. But he swore it was true and he
wouldn't take it back. Then I conceived the idea of greater punishment
for Bud by giving him away to you. He almost wept at this, begged me to
beat him, said he could stand anything except you thinking Curly a hero
and him a low-down skunk, or something."

"I--I don't know what to say," replied Gloriana, but it was plain to Jim
that she wanted to laugh.

"Glory, I told you--gave you fair warning. If you flirt with these
cowboys you must pay dearly for it. And, of course, you have flirted, if
not intentionally, then some other way. It won't do out here. These boys
have hearts of gold. Every last one of them would die for you. They seem
like some kind of inflammable tinder. So easy, cool, droll, yet
underneath all fire. Curly Prentiss is the highest type of cowboy I know.
He is a prince. All the same he's a strutting, conceited jackass who
needs a lesson. Bud is the best-hearted of the lot, honest as the day. He
speaks right out what he thinks. A raw, crude, common sort of person to
any superficial observer from the East, but to me, or Uncle Jim, or
anyone who sees clearly, he's a boy to love. The rest of the outfit trail
along somewhat similarly, except Slinger Dunn. He's not a cowboy. He's a
strange mixture of woodsman and Indian, of country boy and chivalrous
gentleman. All the same, if I were you I'd be careful of what I said or
did before him."

"I'm afraid it's too late," replied Gloriana, with gravity. "You took us
to the hospital to see him. He had my picture under his pillow. Told me
right out he'd gazed at it until he was terribly in love with me. That
you had taken Molly from him and he was going to take me from you."

"Well, I'm a son-of-a-gun!" ejaculated Jim.

"I should have squelched him at once," admitted Gloriana. "But I didn't.
I didn't take him seriously. Thought that was just Western. And at a
dance here I'm afraid I made it worse. He--"

"Glory darling," interrupted Jim, plaintively, "I don't want to know any
more. I've trouble of my own. I need your help--not to be staggered with
your love affairs."

"Silly! My love affairs? The idea!" she retorted, but her cheeks were
red.



CHAPTER TEN

After breakfast, at which Gloriana was not present, Jim asked for a
conference with his uncle and Locke. They repaired at once to the
living-room. Jim began with his discovery of Diamond-branded cattle going
aboard the train with Bambridge's shipment from Winslow, and slighted
nothing in his narrative of what had followed, nor any of his conjectures
and convictions, and lastly, the opinions of his men. After he had
concluded, his superiors smoked furiously, which appeared their only
indication of mental disturbance. Locke was the first to break silence:
"I advise givin' up Yellow Jacket."

"Naw," replied Traft, laconically.

"I don't want to," added Jim. "It's a wild, lonely, wonderful wilderness.
I want to own it--improve it--and live there part of the year, at least."

"Wal, aside from Jim's leanin' to Yellow Jacket, I wouldn't let it go
now," went on Traft. "It'd be givin' in to Bambridge, an' I'll see him in
hell first."

"Short an' sweet," said Locke, with a dry cackle. He knew his employer of
old. "Then I suggest we arrange some plan of transportin' Mr. Bambridge
to the place you name."

"Aw, Ring, don't get funny. This is business...How many head of unbranded
stock can you round up this spring?"

"Matter of ten thousand, more or less, countin' new calves."

"Wal, slap the Diamond brand on half of them, this comin' round-up,"
ordered the rancher, brusquely.

Locke wrote in his note-book, then said: "I'd advise no cattle drive to
Yellow Jacket till spring. Let the rustlers have a change at the lower
range."

"Reckon thet's a good idea. Put it down. Now, Jim, tell Locke what you
want for the house. He'll order it. Meanwhile the sleddin' will be good
an' we'll haul all supplies such as hardware, cement, tools, powder, down
to Cottonwood Ranch, an' store it there. Lumber, framework, bricks, and
all such to follow fast as it gets here. When the ground dries in the
spring you can haul in over your new road...As for the present, wal,
stick to our original plan. Take the Diamond back to Yellow Jacket
an' clean it up--of varmints, rubbish, an' such, includin' any rustlers
who might come burnin' your good firewood...Savvy?"

"Wal, don't pester me with this two-bit stuff any more," replied Traft
testily. "Help Jim all you can. It's up to him." And he stalked out
sturdily, his shaggy head erect, leaving Jim alone with the
superintendent.

"Shorter an' sweeter," said Lod tapping his book with his pencil.

"Gosh--I never heard Uncle talk like that. What ails him?"

"He's sore at Bambridge. Small wonder. He's had forty years buckin' the
crooked side of cattle-raisin', an' he hates it...Jim, he's given you a
man-size job. But you've got a hard crew in the Diamond. They're good fer
it. Jed Stone's movin' off your range strikes me deep. It means a lot,
besides his bein' decent. I've a hunch he's about through, some way or
another. But Malloy will have to be reckoned with. If you ever meet him,
anyhow, under any circumstances, shoot quick an' think afterwards. Don't
ever fail to pack a gun, an' keep Slinger or Curly close to you."

"Ring--you mean here--at home--in town?" queried Jim, aghast.

"I should smile."

"Whew!--When will I ever learn?"

"You've been shot once, an' shot at a number of times. Don't you savvy
what it means? Come down on the hard ground, Jim."

After that conference, which left Jim with a keen, poignant sense of
responsibility, he stayed in his room until after dinner and then started
for town on foot. Any sharp observer, at least a Westerner, could have
detected the bulge of a gun back on his hip, and the tip of a leather
sheath projecting an inch or two below his coat. How he longed for the
cool imperturbability of Curly Prentiss or the aloof unapproachableness
of Slinger Dunn! But these he could never attain, for he had not been
born to the West. Jim had to make determination do for confidence. And
when, in accordance with his plan, he walked into Babbitt's store, no one
would have guessed the sinking sensation he had in his vitals. He was
terribly afraid of Molly Dunn, not to mention the gunman, Croak Malloy.

Jim knew he was something of a lion when under the sway of righteous
anger, but most assuredly he could not muster that at will.

Molly stood behind the counter, and from her wide startled eyes he
gathered that she had seen him first. It was early and he appeared to be
the only customer present, and at once the object of much interest, both
of which facts did not confuse him one whit.

"Good-day, Molly," he said, doffing his sombrero. "Yesterday I forgot
what I wanted to buy."

"Howdy--Jim," she faltered, huskily, the scarlet coming up from neck to
face. How the sight made Jim's blood leap! She could not be indifferent
to his presence.

"I want that red silk scarf and a pair of buckskin gloves," he said.

Molly produced the scarf, and then, with the other clerks snickering
openly, she had to try glove after glove on Jim's hand, until he was
satisfied with the fit. Her little brown fingers trembled so that she was
scarcely able to perform the task; and Jim gloated over this
manifestation of weakness, instead of feeling sorry for her.

"Thanks. I reckon these will do," he said, at length. "Please charge to
the Traft account...I shall tell Mr. Babbitt you are a very beautiful
clerk, but a poor saleswoman."

Molly was staring at the gun-sheath under his coat. Her eye had been
quick to see it.

"Jim!--You're packin' a gun!" she exclaimed, breathlessly and low.

"I should snigger I am, as Bud would say," he replied facetiously

"Who for?" she whispered, and it was significant that she did not say
what for.

"Well, if you care to know, that Hash-Knife gunman, Croak Malloy, is
looking for me--and I am looking for a fellow named Ed Darnell,"
concluded Jim, and heartless though he knew himself, it was impossible to
look into her eyes then. He took his parcels and went out, most acutely
conscious of bursting veins and thrilling nerves.

Jim walked down the street, dropping in at all the business places his
uncle had dealings. Then he visited the saloons, which were more numerous
and to him vastly more interesting. He acted, too, like a man who was
looking for someone. Next he called at the post-office and the hotel,
after which he returned to Babbitt's store.

Molly did not see him enter. She was busy with a customer, which
occupation permitted Jim a moment to devour her sweet face with hungry
eyes. She looked paler and thinner than he had ever seen her; and these
evidences of trouble were dear to Jim's heart. She had not done this
cruel thing without suffering. Presently she finished with her customer
and espied Jim.

"You again?" she queried, blushing furiously.

"I forgot something, Molly," he drawled.

"Somethin', you wanted to buy?" she went on, a little sarcastically.

"Yes, but I forget. Whenever I see your sweet face I forget
everything...Oh, yes, buckskin gauntlets for the cowboys--the fringed
ones with a horseshoe design on the back. Christmas gifts, you know. My
size will do."

"How many pairs?" she asked.

"Have you forgotten how many cowboys in my outfit?"

She did not reply and presently sorted out the gloves, wrapped them into
a parcel and handed it to him. This time he fixed upon her reproachful
piercing eyes.

"Molly, you are to understand that I do not accept my dismissal," he
said, deliberately. "I'm sorry you feel so. I--I forgive you, I
guess...And I'll not give you up."

"But, Jim, everybody heah knows," she said, shrinkingly.

"What?"

"Thet I gave--you up 'cause I wasn't good enough--for you."

Jim could scarcely refrain from leaning over the counter and snatching
her to his breast.

"I know, Molly. But you're terribly mistaken. Uncle Jim knows you're good
enough for me. I know you're too good for me or anyone else. And Glory,
she's heart and soul for you."

"Jim, I reckon, you're somethin' of a liar," she returned, a red spot
forming in each cheek.

"Ordinarily, yes, but not in this," he said, cheerfully. "Anyway, it
doesn't make the slightest difference who and what you are. You're going
to be Mrs. James Traft."

"I--I am--not."

"You bet you are...Oh yes, that reminds me. I forgot something else. Look
here." He slipped the little ring-box out of his pocket, and bending over
the counter opened the lid. The big blue-white diamond seemed to leap up.
Jim glanced quickly at Molly's face. And that was enough, almost even for
him.

"I thought you'd like it," he said, remorsefully, but not now meeting her
tragic eyes. "We'll try it on first chance...So long, till tomorrow."

Taking up his purchases, Jim hurried out, his pulse tingling, his heart
singing. Molly loved him still. And all the way out the bleak cold road
he could have danced. Upon arriving home he went in to see Gloriana, who
was gorgeously arrayed in a dressing-gown and demonstratively glad to see
him. Jim recounted his adventure to Glory.

"Men are brutes, devils, fiends," responded his sister. "But since the
female of the species is what she is and self-preservation the first law
of life, I don't see what else you can do. Hurry and get Molly back
here."

"Give me a little time, Glory," declared Jim, somewhat daunted.

"Get her here before she goes to the dance with that darn Darnell,"
advised Gloriana, with a wonderful purple flash of eyes.

"Reckon I don't want to, till afterward. I sure am curious to see how she
acts--and Darnell, too--and what the cowboys do."

"Will you tell them?"

"I will, you bet, and between you and me, Glory, I wouldn't be in
Darnell's boots for a million."

"You are beginning to make me feel the same way...Jim, you showed the
ring to Molly?"

"Yes--and you should have seen her eyes. Oh!--I felt like a coyote, but,
gosh! I was happy."

"It's a lovely ring, Jim. Let me have it a little--just to look at. I
won't put it on."

"Sure. But wait till I come back from the bunk-house. I want to show it
to the boys."

"Jim, if you're going to tell them about Darnell, put it strong."

"Huh! Trust me. I've already told them something...Glory, I don't feel so
sick this afternoon."

"You loving goose!--Heigho! I wish somebody loved me that way."

"That's funny. As if you hadn't had and didn't have more love than any
girl ever had."

"But, Jim, only to be loved because you're pretty!" she exclaimed. "Would
even these sentimental cowboys love me--if they knew I couldn't cook,
sew, bake, darn a sock--that I'm a useless ornament that the thought of
babies scares me stiff?"

"Sure they would. Men are loving geese, Glory. Don't worry. Only begin to
deserve it."

He made his way to the bunk-house, finding all the boys in, as he had
expected, and recovered from any indulgence they might have treated
themselves to the night before.

"Fellars, hyar's the boss, lookin' like a thundercloud," announced Bud.

"Packin' a gun, too, the Mizzouri hayseed," added Curly.

"Boys, friends, pards," he began, dramatically, "if it weren't for my
sister and you I'd blow my brains out."

Silence! Staring eyes and awed lean faces attested to the felicity of his
acting.

"Why, Jim, what the hell?" uttered Curly, without his drawl.

"Listen. Let me tell it quick," he announced, hurriedly. "We go back to
Yellow Jacket after New Year's. No more town till spring, if then. The
old man is sore at Bambridge--at this two-bit rustling. We've got the job
of clearing the range of varmints, rubbish, rustlers, and so forth. He'll
throw five thousand head of cattle on to Yellow Jacket in less than a
year. That's that, and it isn't a marker to what I'm going to tell you."

"Let me get it off my chest," went on Jim. "Maybe you remember I hinted
of a fellow named Darnell, who made trouble for my sister back in
Missouri. Anyway, he's here in Flag. Has taken a job with Bambridge. He
has been hounding poor Glory until she has stopped going to town. She is
deathly afraid of him. Afraid he will disgrace me by talking about her.
Mind you--Glory is straight and fine and good. So don't get the wrong
hunch. She was only a crazy girl and this Darnell is a man, handsome,
slick as the devil, a gambler and cheat at cards, and crooked otherwise.
He beat Glory out of money, and my father too. She thinks he'll beat
Uncle Jim the same way. But you all know Darnell can't fool the old
man...Now does that sink in?"

"Wal, it shore doesn't sink very deep in me, Boss," drawled Curly.
"Mister Darnell has shore picked an awful unhealthy climate."

"You saw Darnell with Bambridge that day at the station."

"Shore. An' thet was enough fer me an' Bud an' all of the outfit."

"All right...here's the worst--Lord! how am I to get--it out?" continued
Jim, and now he did not need to simulate trouble. He was genuine. He felt
clammy and nauseated. He paced a step here and there, flung himself upon
the chair before the fire, and all but tore his hair in his distress and
shame.

"Molly Dunn has--jilted me. Broken her engagement--left my uncle's
house...Says she's not good enough to marry me. And it's just the other
way around. Poor kid! Just let that sink in, will you?...She's a clerk
in Babbitt's store in the afternoons. Mornings she goes to school.
All that's tough, boys. But listen to this. She's going around with
that ---- Darnell!...I can't realise it, let alone understand it. But
Glory says Molly is only distracted--out of her head--that it's really
because she loves me she's done it. Wants everybody in Flag to see she's
not good enough for us! That's why she's carrying on with this Darnell.
I'm so sorry for her I--I could cry. And so mad I could bite nails. And
so scared I can't think."

Jim paused for breath. What relief to get this confession made! When he
looked up he gathered a singular conception of the regard in which he was
held by the Diamond. It was rather a big moment for him.

Slinger Dunn, without a word, put on his cap and glided noiselessly
toward the door.

"Hold on, Slinger. Where you going?"

Dunn turned. At any moment his sloe-black eyes were remarkable; just now
they made Jim shiver.

"I was shore wonderin' why my sister hadn't sent fer me to come up to the
house," he said. "An' I reckon it's aboot time I hunted her up. Then I'll
take a look round fer this Darnell fellar."

"Slinger by all means go see Molly, but let Darnell alone for the
present," rejoined Jim, earnestly.

"Jim, air you electin' to boss me aboot Molly?" asked Slinger.

"No indeed, Slinger. Only asking you to wait."

"What fer?"

"Listen, Slinger, and all of you," said Jim. "Tomorrow night is this
Christmas Eve dance. We'll all go. We'll look this Darnell over. I won't
do anything and I ask you not to--until after that. But understand me.
I--I couldn't stick it out here in the West without Molly. You all know
how I care for her. It's far more serious for me than the Hash-Knife
deal...I've confided my intimate feelings because I believe you all my
pards. I reckon I'll be laughed at and ridiculed by the Flagerstown young
people, as I was at first. But I don't care. All I care for is to get
Molly back, to make a home for Glory, and to have the Diamond stick to
me."

Curly might have been spokesman for the outfit. Usually in critical cases
he assumed that position. Now he laid a lean, brown, pressing hand upon
Jim's shoulder.

"Jim, all this heah Diamond cares for is thet you grow a little more
Western overnight," he drawled, in his careless, cool, inflexible tone,
that seemed to carry such moment. Curly's ultimatum intimated so much. It
embodied all of Jim's longings. He divined in that cowboy's droll words
an unutterable and unquenchable loyalty, and more, the limitless spirit
and the strength of all that the wild range engendered.

"By Heaven--I will!" cried Jim, ringingly, as he leaped to his feet.



CHAPTER ELEVEN

Jim had resisted an impulse to bribe the cowboys to call in a body and
singly at Babbitt's store to make purchases of Molly and incidentally
remind her of him.

In his own case he went downtown late, and everywhere except Babbitt's,
trying to screw up his courage. It was not that overnight he had not
become transposed to a thorough Arizonian, but that his genuine
tenderness for Molly had asserted itself. This he knew he should not
yield to. Still he did. On several occasions he espied some of his
cowboys, laden with bundles, mysteriously gay and full of the devil. They
had not required prompting to do the very thing he had so sneakingly
desired. He could just imagine the drawling, persuasive Curly telling
Molly she was out of her haid. And Bud--what that cherubic volcanic
friend would say was beyond conjecture. And Slinger! Jim had forgotten
that Slinger was Molly's brother, her guardian, in his own estimation, at
any rate. It rather frightened Jim to guess what Slinger would do,
considering he was not given to much speech. And the rest of the
cowboys--they would drive Molly frantic in their Western fashion.

Ruminating thus, Jim lounged in the lobby of the hotel. All of a sudden
he saw Molly go into Davis's store, on the far corner. He jumped. It was
only four o'clock, and she should have at least another hour of work.
What a chance! It quite took his breath. He went out, crossed the street,
and stood back in a hallway, close to the door of the store, where he
could see and scarcely be seen. Once he had to dodge back to escape
detection when Lonestar and Cherry passed, each with a load of packages.
"Gosh!" ejaculated Jim. "They've been in Babbitt's. I can tell by the
wrapping-paper on those parcels."

He had to wait what seemed an endless while before Molly appeared. Then
he stepped out as if by magic, and Molly bumped into him. It startled her
so that she uttered a cry and dropped some of her bundles. Jim picked
them up, and rising he coolly faced the scarlet Molly and appropriated
the rest of her parcels.

"I reckon I'll carry these. Where you going?" he said, naturally, with a
smile.

"Home. To my boardin'-house," she said, a little mockingly.

"Well, I'll pack your load for you," returned Jim.

"You played me a low-down trick," she said, presently, coldly.

"Me? I sure did not. How so?"

"You set thet Diamond outfit on to me."

"Molly! I swear I didn't. Honest. You know I wouldn't lie," replied Jim,
most earnestly.

"You shore would. You'd do anythin'."

"But I protest my innocence."

"Innocence?--You!" She gave him her eyes for a second. Jim felt shot
through with black and gold arrows.

"Sure I'm innocent. I thought how good it'd be to send the gang in on
you--if for nothing else than to remind you of my existence. But I
didn't. Not only that, Molly, but yesterday I actually kept Slinger from
hunting you up."

"Wal, you shore didn't this heah day...Oh, it was--turrible!" Her voice
broke, close to a sob.

"Molly!--I'm sorry. What'd Slinger say?"

"Nothin 'cept, 'come heah, you moon-eyed calf!'...I was paralysed when I
seen him come in. I couldn't run. Slinger's eyes are shore turrible. He
reached over the counter an' said--what I told you. Then he grabbed me by
my blouse--it's a way he has--only this time he pulled me half over the
counter--face down--an'--an' smacked me so hard you could have heahed it
out in the street...I won't be able to--to set down at dinner!...An' then
he said he'd see me later."

Molly stopped before a modest little brown cottage, almost at the end of
the street. Jim made a note of the single large pine-tree in the yard,
for future emergency, when he wished to find Molly after dark.

"This is where I board," she said, simply.

"Are you comfortable here?" asked Jim, anxiously.

"I'm used to cold. But there's a stove in the parlour. Come in."

Jim was elated that she should trust him so far as to ask him inside. The
modest little parlour was warm and comfortable indeed, compared with the
blustery outdoors. Jim deposited Molly's bundles in a chair, and turning
discovered that she had removed her hat and coat and was warming her
hands over the stove. She looked healthy and pretty, yet somehow forlorn.
What was to prevent him taking her in his arms then and there? He longed
to. That had been his intention, should opportunity offer. Nevertheless,
something inhibited him. Probably it was a divination that Molly, during
the few minutes' walk with him, had unconsciously been drawn to him
again. She betrayed it now. That was what he had prayed for, but he could
not act upon it.

"Thanks for asking me in, Molly," he said. "I suppose you expect me to
get my trouble off my chest--then let you alone...Well, I won't do it
now. When that time comes we'll have a grand row And I just won't spoil
your Christmas...But I ask you--will you send word to Darnell that you
will not go to the dance with him tonight?"

"Thet'd be a low-down trick," replied Molly, quickly.

"It does appear so. There are good reasons, however, why it would be
wise for you to do so--unless you want to lose your good name in Flag."

"Glory said thet. I don't believe either of you. An' it's not square of
you to--"

"You needn't argue the point. Answer me. Will you go with me instead?"

She hung her head, she clenched her little trembling hands, she shook all
over. What a trial that must have been! Jim sought to add to it.

"With me and Glory, of course. She wants you. And she thinks this is the
time for you to come back. Before you've made me the laughing-stock of
Flag."

"But it cain't do thet," she cried.

"Yes it can. And it will. Not that I care a hang for what people think or
say. We want you to avoid--well, Molly, being misunderstood, not to say
worse."

"You hit it on the haid, Jim," she replied, with spirit. "Thet's what I'm
not goin' to avoid."

Jim regarded her speculatively. If he had had a vehicle of some kind out
in the street he would have picked her up right there, as she was, and
packed her out, and carried her off home. But this drastic action could
scarcely be undertaken now, though his finger-tips burned to snatch her.

But there was a deadlock. Molly and Jim glared at each other across the
stove, above which their extended hands almost met. Jim found it hard to
tear himself away, especially in view of her anger. He pondered a moment.
Finally he said, gently: "Darling, do you have any idea to what extremes
you may drive me?"

She shook her head dubiously.

"Don't you know I worship you?" Her glossy head dropped.

"Don't you realise you'll ruin me if you persist in this madness? I can't
believe it. But you might convince me, eventually."

Then she covered her face with her hands and the tears trickled through
her fingers.

Jim grasped at the right moment to make his escape.

"I won't distress you any more," he said. "Don't cry and make your eyes
red. I'll see you tonight. Please save a dance for me."

Then he rushed out to find the cold wind soothing to a heated brow. He
trudged home, his mind in a whirl.

Before supper he went out to the bunkhouse, to find the place a bedlam of
jolly cowpunchers and a storeful of the men's furnishings, goods which
they had bought so indiscriminately. All of the boys were sober--a
remarkable circumstance on the eve of Christmas. When he entered--and he
had stood in the open door a moment--they whooped and began to throw
packages at him.

"Merry Christmas!" yelled Bud. "Son-of-a-gun from Mizzouri!" yelled
Curly.

"Whoopee, you diamond-buyer!" yelled Cherry.

"You lovesick dyin' duck!" yelled someone Jim did not pick out, for the
reason that he had to dodge. And so it went until they had exhausted
their vocabularies and their missiles.

"Am I to understand that this fusillade is kindly meant?" he asked, with
mock solemnity.

"Means we shore went broke on you an' Molly Dunn," replied Bud.

"Boys, that was a cowboy stunt--your buying out Babbitt's," said Jim.
"I'm broke, too, but I'll share the debt."

Someone observed that he would like the old lady who kept tavern out
west, and as Jim had learned that that was a very disreputable thing, he
made no further comment.

"Slinger, I hope you didn't tell these wild men what you did in
Babbitt's," he returned.

"I shore did, an' the outfit's with me, Mister Traft," answered Dunn.

"Boss, Slinger had an inspurashun," observed Bud, sagely. "Soon as a
fellar learns to treat bull-haided sisters an' fickle sweethearts
thetaway he'll get some obedience."

"I'm afraid it won't work on high-spirited girls like Molly and my
sister."

"It shore would. Wimmen is all the same. What you say, pard Curly?"

"But, on this heah Christmas Eve my heart is shore sad," rejoined Curly.
"Peace on earth an' good will toward men is a lot of guff. There's battle
an' murder in the air. Some of us won't ever see another Christmas."

"Then we oughta get turrible drunk," said Bud.

Approval of this statement was not wanting.

"Curly, what's eating you?" asked Jim, grasping that his favourite cowboy
had something besides the festivities of the season on his mind.

"Ask Bud," replied Curly, gloomily.

"Wal, Boss, it ain't nuthin' much, least-ways oughtn't fuss us till after
Christmas," replied Bud. "Curly an' I made a round of the gamblin'-places
this afternoon. I didn't know what was in Curly's mind. Anyway, the
doorkeeper at Snell's tried to bar Curly out. Shore it's a swell place,
but we reckoned it wasn't none too good fer the Diamond. After I got in I
seen why Curly pushed his gun against the doorkeeper's bread-basket. A
bartender friend of Curly's had tipped him off thet there was a big game
goin' on at Snell's. Wal, there was. Bambridge, Blodgett, another rancher
we didn't know, an' Blake, a hotel man from Winslow, an' last this hyar
Darnell hombre, was sittin' in. You should of seen the coin of the realm
on thet table. Wal, we watched the game. I seen Bambridge was bettin'
high an' losin'. Looked like he'd whoop up the pots, an' Darnell would
rake them in. Blake is no slouch of a gambler, an' he was shore sore at
the game, either from losin' or somethin'. All I seen about Darnell was
thet he was mighty slick with the cards. They jest flew out of his hands.
Curly, you know, is a card sharp hisself, an' he swore Darnell stacked
the deck on every deal he had. An' Blodgett an' the strange rancher,
anyhow, was gettin' a hell of a fleecin'."

"Ahuh. So that's it," returned Jim, seriously. "Curly, I don't see
anything in that to make you sad on Christmas Eve."

"Boss, there's shore two things," drawled Curly. "I've got to raise
enough money to set in that game at Snell's. An' I'm wonderin' if Darnell
is as slick with a gun as he is with the cairds."

"Life is orful hard fer a cowpuncher when he's in love," observed Bud.
"Sky so blue an' grass so green, flowers an' birds, dance an' holdin'
hands, an' kisses sweeter'n ambergris--an' jest round the corner bloody
death lurkin'."

"What's the idea, Curly?" asked Jim, quickly interested.

"Boss, it's a fine chance to get rid of Mister Darnell without involvin'
any of our lady friends, you know. Flag is such a hell of a place for
gossip. An' I reckon there's shore enough right now."

"Get rid of Darnell!" ejaculated Jim curiously.

"Shore. I can set in thet game if I've a good-sized roll. Shore I'd flash
in an' let on I was a little drunk. Savvy? Wal, I can nail Darnell at his
cheatin' at cairds. If he pulls a gun--well, an' good. If not he'll shore
find Flag too hot a town in winter."

"Curly, it's a grand idea, except the possibility of Darnell's throwin' a
gun. I hardly believe he'd have the nerve. He's an Easterner."

"We don't know for shore," said Curly. "He might even be from Texas."

"Aw, guff an' nonsense!" burst out Bud. "Thet handsome white-mugged
sharper won't go fer a gun. But whatinhell's the difference if he does?
Saves us the trouble of stringin' him up to a cottonwood...An', Boss, an'
Curly, an' you galoots, thet's what Darnell is slated fer. I seen it--I
felt it...Now I ask you, knowin' how few my hunches are--do you recollect
any of them far wrong? What's more, Bambridge ain't genuine Western. He's
too cock-sure. He reckons us all easy marks."

"Curly, I'll dig up the money and go with you to Snell's," said Jim.

The Diamond immediately voted upon a united presence at that occasion.
Curly made no objection, provided they dropped in unobtrusively.

"I heahed this poker game has been goin' on most in the afternoons," he
said, "An' course it's kind of private--Snell's is--an' you may not get
in. But don't start a fight. Aboot four o'clock would be a good hour,
Jim."

"How much money will you require?" queried Jim.

"Wal, I ought to have a roll of greenbacks big enough to choke a cow,
with a century as a wrapper. Shore I'll have to flash this roll or they'd
never let me set in. But you can gamble I won't lose much of it."

"That makes it easier," said Jim. "I can manage somehow...Now, fellows,
about this dance tonight. It's at the hotel and the big bugs in town are
back of it. No knockdown and drag-out cowboy dance. Savvy?...I--I tried
to coax Molly not to go with this Darnell, but she's stubborn. She's
going. And we can't help it. I'm curious to see what comes off. Also a
little worried about you boys. Anything up your sleeves?"

"Nope. We're layin' low, Boss, honest Injun," averred Bud.

"You see, Jim, Molly's picked the quickest way to queer herself with Flag
folks," went on Curly. "But the crazy kid--she's not smart enough to see
that Darnell won't queer himself with these Flag girls fer her. Shore as
shootin' Molly Dunn of the Cibeque will be a wall-flower at the dance."

"But you boys..." began Jim, haltingly.

"Shore we'll cut her daid," interrupted Curly, and his drawling voice had
a steel ring. "Molly's a darlin', but she, cain't play didoes with the
Diamond."

While Jim dressed for the dance his mind was active. If his cowboys and
acquaintances snubbed Molly that night it might give him an opening for
the wild plot he meant to carry out. And if Darnell played up to it as
Gloriana had declared he would play--then the hour would be ripe for
Jim's coup. He had to choke down his shame, his resentment that he must
resort to such means to recover his sweetheart. Whatever he was going to
do must be done quickly, for Molly's sake more than his.

Molly's room at the ranch-house had been kept precisely as she had left
it. Jim went to the kitchen and gave the housekeeper instructions to
light Molly's lamps about midnight, to start a fire in the grate, and to
be careful about the screen. Lastly, Jim took from his closet the fur
coat he had bought for Molly, and with this on his arm, and his own
overcoat, he made the stone-floored corridor ring with his footsteps.
Gloriana's room was dark, except for the flicker of wood fire behind the
screen. Whereupon Jim hurried to the living-room.

Glory stood in the bright flare of lamps and fire, her furs on the floor,
and she was pivoting for the benefit of her uncle.

Jim was not prepared for this vision of loveliness. Glory, in white gown
with flounces of exquisite lace, and a hint of blue, her beautiful arms
and neck bare, with a smile of pure joy on her face, and that dancing
purple lightning in her eyes, was an apparition and a reality that sent
the blood thrilling from Jim's heart.

"Glory, you look a little like your mother," Uncle Jim was saying. "But I
reckon, only a little...Lass, I--I hope we Western folks are not too
rough an' plain to--to make you happy. It shore makes me happy, an'
almost young again, to look at you."

"Thank you, Uncle; that is a sweet compliment," said Glory, and she
stepped out of her furs to kiss him. "Don't you worry about me and all my
finery. It'll wear out--and by that time I hope I'll deserve to be happy
in the great West."

It was late according to Western custom when Jim and Gloriana arrived at
the hotel, and the lobby was crowded. Red and green decorations, upon
which shone bright lights, lent the interior of the hotel the felicitous
colour of the season. Entrance to the dining-hall, from which emanated
strains of Spanish music and the murmur of gay voices, was blocked by a
crowd of lookers-on, some of whom surely had the lithe build of cowboys.

Jim saw Gloriana to the wide stairway which led to the ladies'
dressing-room, and then went in search of his own. Curly and Bud were
there, immaculate in dark suits and white shirts, which rendered them
almost unrecognisable to Jim. Curly, particularly, looked handsome and
clean-cut, and he did not appear uncomfortable, as did Bud. Slinger also
showed up on Jim's entrance, sleek and dark and impassive, as striking in
his black suit as when he wore the deerskin of the forest.

"Where's the gang?" asked Jim.

"Wal, they're shore out there hoofin' it. Up an' Lonestar an' Cherry an'
Jack all dug up girls somewhere. Hump says he's too crippled yet an' will
only look on."

"Boss, you oughta see the lady who came in on the arm of Jackson Way,"
observed Bud. "Out-of-town gurl an' she'll run Molly close fer looks.
Jack never seen us atall. Son-of-a-gun! We gotta get a dance with her."

"Sure. I'll fix it, boys," Jim assured them. "Slinger, you're going to
dance?" asked Jim.

"I shore ain't hankerin' to make a slidin' fool of myself. Bud promised
this mawnin', an' I reckon I cain't back out."

Curly looked rather fierce, and chewed at his cigarette, something
unusual for the cool Texan.

"Well, come on, you Diamond," said Jim, at length. "Let's go get Glory."

She was waiting for Jim on the stairway, queenly and beautiful, her great
eyes brilliant with excitement and interest.

"My Gawd! Curly, lemme hold on to you," whispered Bud.

Curly let out a little gasp, which was not lost on Jim, but Slinger
showed no sign of being transfixed by Gloriana's loveliness. She came
down to meet them, with just a hint of eager gaiety, and apparently
unconscious of the gaping crowd. After a moment of greeting Curly elbowed
an entrance for the others into the colourful hall.

"Pretty nifty, I'll say," observed Bud. "What do you think of the style
of Flag's puttin' on, since you come, Miss Glory?"

"Very different from Jim's letter descriptions of Western dance-halls,"
laughed Gloriana. "I like this."

"Jim, hurry an' dance with your sister so we can get a chanct," added
Bud, very business-like.

"Say, don't you gazabos fight over Glory or dance her off her feet,"
replied Jim. "That happened last time. Glory came West to get well, and
not to be buried...Come on, Glory, see if boots and chaps have made me
clumsy."

When he swung his sister out into the eddying throng of dancers she said:
"Jim, I saw Molly in the dressing-room. Sue Henderson and her mother cut
her dead. Mrs. Henderson, you know, is the leading social light of Flag.
Molly looked wonderfully sweet and pretty in her new dress. But scared,
and dazed in spite of her nerve. Jim, she won't be able to carry it
through. Darnell will fail her. Then your chance will come."

"Poor crazy kid!" choked Jim. "This'll be a rotten night for her--and
sure a tough one for me...Glory, if it wasn't for that, I'd be the
proudest escort you ever had at any dance. Even as it is I just want to
bust with pride I'll bet you Curly squeezed my arm black and blue, when
he saw you on the stairs. And Bud whispered: 'My Gawd! Curly, lemme hold
on to you!'"

"They are dears," replied Gloriana, dreamily. "Only--just too much in
earnest...Slinger scares me."

At the expiration of that waltz they were at the far end of the large
room, and had to make their way through a whispering, staring crowd of
dancers. Jim espied Jackson Way with a pretty brunette girl. Jack tried
to escape in the press, but Jim nailed him gaily. "Where you going,
cowboy?" And so the blushing Jack and his fair damsel were captured and
led across to Curly and Bud and Slinger.

"Glory, I'll leave you to the tender mercies of the Diamond," said Jim,
after there had been a pleasant interchange of introductions and some gay
repartee. "But I'll keep an eye on you..."

"Jim, there are Ed Darnell and Molly," interrupted Gloriana, suddenly.
Her voice had an icy edge.

Before Jim glanced up he felt a jerk of his whole frame, as released
blood swelled along his hot veins. He saw Molly first, and knew her, yet
seemed not to know. As he met her dusky eyes, unnaturally large and
bright, with almost a wild expression, his passion subsided. He smiled
and bowed to her as if nothing untoward had happened. And it pleased him
that Gloriana did likewise. The others of Jim's company, however,
pointedly snubbed Molly. Then Jim's glance switched to Darnell. In this
good-looking and elegant gentleman Jim scarcely recognised the man he had
seen with Bambridge in the station at Winslow. At least that was a first
impression, which had not the test of proximity or consistence; and he
concluded it would be wiser to be deaf to his jealousy and await
developments.

Darnell did precisely what Gloriana had predicted. He neglected Molly for
the girls of higher social standing, and it seemed to Jim that when
Darnell grasped the significance of the situation he showed his true
colours. He left Molly to the cowboys and the clerks. She danced and
flirted widely. She was too gay, too indifferent, and before long she
broke and went to the other extreme. Jim watched her sit out three dances
alone, trying to hide in a corner. But Molly Dunn could not hide at that
dance.

Jim thought it was time to do something, and approaching Gloriana, who
sat with Curly, he said, "Come on, you." And he dragged them up.

"You're going to dance with Molly," replied Gloriana, gladly. "It is high
time."

"Yes, if she will. But, anyway, we can show this crowd where we stand."

As they approached Molly she appeared to shrink, all except her big dark
eyes. Gloriana sat down beside her and said something nice about Molly's
new dress and how sweet she looked.

"Molly, won't you dance the next with me?" asked Jim.

Curly gazed down upon her, his fair handsome face clouded, and his
flashing blue eyes full of sorrow.

"Molly Dunn, you've shore played hell heah tonight," he said.

Molly surely was ready to burst into tears when the music started again.
Dancers from all sides rushed upon the floor, and Curly, with a gay call
to him, drew Gloriana into the thick of the whirling throng. Jim did not
wait for Molly's consent; he took her hand, and pulled her to her feet
and led her out into the maze. Then when he had her close and tight in
his arms, he felt that he had surely understood himself.

"Oh--Jim," she whispered, "it's been awful!...An' that worst was when
Glory came to me jest now--before them all--an' spoke so sweet--as if
nothin' had happened...Oh, I wanted the ground to open an' swallow me."

Jim thought that a strange speech, full of contrition and shame as it
was. What about him! But Gloriana had been the great factor in Molly's
downfall.

"Glory is true blue, Molly," Jim whispered back. "That ought to prove it.
You've doubted her."

Jim felt a gradual relaxing of Molly's stiff little hand, and then a
sinking of her form against him.

"I'm ashamed," she replied, huskily. "I'll go drown myself in the
Cibeque."

"Yes, you will!" In the press of the throng it seemed to Jim that he had
her alone and hidden safe from the inquisitive eyes. He could hug her
without restraint and he did. Molly hid her dusky head on his shoulder
and danced as one in a trance.



CHAPTER TWELVE

All too soon that dance ended, and Jim got Molly into an out-of-the-way
corner, where a few other couples, evidently lovers, were too concerned
with themselves to look at anyone else.

Jim believed the tide had turned in his favour, though tragic little
Molly was unconscious of it. She gazed up at him as if fascinated, with
almost a terrible yearning and hopelessness. "Don't do it," whispered
Jim, "or I'll kiss you right here."

"Do--do what?"

"Look at me like that...Molly, you've sure made a mess of Christmas Eve,
but it's not too late."

"Oh, yes, Jim dear, it is too late," she sighed, mournfully. "They all
gave me--the cold shoulder. Except Glory, bless her! I--I cain't realise
she didn't take me at my word."

"Not Glory. And what do you care for the others? You won't have to live
with them...Molly, you were mistaken in this Darnell. He's no good. He
very nearly ruined Gloriana. What she told you was true. Look how he has
treated you--"

"Jim, I don't need to be told now," she interrupted bitterly. "He's made
a fool out of me...But only tonight did I learn he's no good. Before we
got here. He--he insulted me, Jim."

"Did he?--Well, that's not surprising. Just how?" returned Jim, in cool,
hard query. "I hope he didn't lay a hand on you."

"He laid two hands on me," she said frankly. "An' he was 'most as bad as
Hack Jocelyn, if you remember, Jim...I was aboot ready to bite when
someone came into the hall."

"Ahuh! Why did you come with him, then?" queried Jim, serenely.

"I had to come to this dance or die. Besides, I reckon I was some to
blame. I told Darnell I wasn't good enough for the Trafts an' their
crowd."

"Molly, you're generous, but you can't save him now."

"You leave him alone," flashed Molly. "He carries a gun. He might hurt
you--an' thet'd shore kill me...I'll tell Slinger. Honest I will. But
Slinger has never even looked at me tonight. He must despise me."

"No. Slinger is just angry with you...Now, Molly, you must not let
Darnell take you home. Promise you won't--or I'll go right out now--"

"I promise, Jim. Please ask Slinger to take me away. I'm sick of this
dance. I want to go home."

"Out to the ranch?" he asked, hopefully.

"Home to the Cibeque, where I belong."

"All right, I'll find Slinger," rejoined Jim, thinking fast and
furiously. "But let's dance again. There goes the music."

Jim did not break the sweet tumultuousness of that dance by a single
word. When it was over he asked Molly to wait near the door, and left her
back somewhat out of the throng. Then he instituted a wild search for
Gloriana, whom he found presently with Curly.

"Gee! you two must be having the time of your lives!" he exclaimed,
surprised at Gloriana's radiance and something indescribable about Curly.

"Jim, I am enjoying myself," admitted Gloriana, with a blush.

"Boss, this heah is aboot as near heaven as I ever hope to get," drawled
Curly.

"Fine. Then you see Glory home. I'm going to be--engaged...Glory, don't
stay late." And Jim rushed away to find Slinger. In this he was also
fortunate, as he found him in the smoking-room, alone and watchful. His
dark face wore rather a sad expression. He was out of his element at a
dance.

"Slinger, I want you. What're you doing? Dancing any?"

"I had one with Glory. Thet'll be aboot all fer me. If I wasn't worried
about the kid I'd chase myself back to the ranch. I've been hangin'
around heah listenin' to this fellar Darnell." Slinger spoke low and
indicated a noisy group of young men. They had a flask and were
exchanging it. Darnell had here the same ingratiating manner, the same
air of good fellowship, which Jim had noted in the dance-hall. He
appeared to be a man nearing thirty, well set up, handsome in a
full-faced sensual way, and unmistakably egotistical. He would go far
with young people.

"What of him?" whispered Jim.

"Wal, I shore ain't crazy aboot him. Strikes me sort of tincanny...Jim,
he's packin' a gun. Can you see thet?"

"No, Slinger, I'll be hanged if I can."

"Wal, he is, an' thet's kind of funny. If I could find a reason, I'd mess
up this heah place with him. But it'd look all the wuss fer Molly--"

"Yes, it would. Let Darnell alone. And, Slinger, listen. Molly has had
enough of this. She sent me to ask you to take her home. But I've got an
idea. You run over to the stable and send a boy with a sleigh. Pronto.
I'll let Molly think you're going to take her. But I'll take her myself,
and out to the ranch? Savvy, pard?"

"I shore do. An' damn' if you ain't a good fellar," declared Slinger.
"Molly had better sit tight this time...Jim, this heah deal eases my
mind."

"Rustle, then, you Indian."

Jim saw Slinger glide out with his inimitable step, and then he went to
get his overcoat and hat. For the moment he had forgotten the fur coat,
which he had folded inside his. But there it was. With these he hurried
back to the hall, eager and thrilling, afraid, too, that Molly might have
bolted or that Daniell might have come out. To his relief, however, he
found her waiting, strained of face, her eyes like burnt holes in a
blanket. They leaped at sight of him.

"Slinger has gone for a sleigh," said Jim, as he reached her, and he
tried to be natural. "Here, slip into this. You won't need to go
upstairs. I'll get your coat to-morrow. And no one will see you as
you go out."

"Whose coat is this?...Oh, what lovely fur!--Glory's?"

"Hurry!" he replied, holding if for her. "Slinger can fetch it right
back."

Jim turned up the high collar of the coat, and against the dark fox fur
Molly's eyes shone beautifully. What a difference fine feathers made!

"Come," he said, taking Molly's arm. He led her out, relieved that but
few dancers paid attention to their departure. In the lobby entrance they
ran squarely into Darnell, gay, heated of face.

"Hello, kid!--Where the deuce are you going?" he shot out, and his gaiety
suddenly fled. Two men behind him came up, evidently his companions, and
curious.

Jim did not recognise either.

"Home," replied Molly, and she flashed by.

Darnell took a step forward to confront Jim.

"We've met before?" he said, and both voice and look were uncertain.

"Yes. I happen to be Jim Traft--Miss Dunn's fiancé. And if you don't step
aside this meeting will be somewhat like the one you spoke of."

It was certain that long before Jim completed this deliberate speech
Darnell had recognised him. One of the strangers drew him aside, so Jim
could pass. And as Jim went out he heard Darnell curse. Molly was already
out in the corridor. As Jim joined her Slinger came up the steps.

"Any ruction heah?" he queried, sharply. "I seen Darnell stop you."

"No. I got out of it all right, Slinger. Come on," replied Jim, grimly,
and he laughed inwardly at the thought of what this Ed Darnell had
happened upon. His luck, at least, was out.

A two-seated sleigh, with a Mexican driver, stood at the curb. Jim
bundled Molly into the back seat, and stepping in he tucked the heavy
robe round her and himself. Molly uttered an exclamation which was surely
amazed protest.

"Slinger, I'll see Molly--home," said Jim, and for the life of him he
could not keep the elation out of his voice.

"Shore, Jim, you see her home," drawled Slinger, meaningly. And he leaned
over the side of the sleigh. "Sister, you've messed up things
considerable. But somehow Jim still loves you, an' I reckon I do, too. We
jest cain't help it. All the same, don't go triflin' with strange fellars
no more. I'll see you in the mawnin'."

"Slinger, you lay off Darnell," insisted Jim, forcefully.

"All right, Boss. But I'll jest watch him a little. Shore is an
interestin' cuss. I seen him gettin' gay with one of them rich gurls."

Jim laughed and told the Mexican boy to drive straight out the main
street.

"It's closer, turnin' heah," spoke up Molly, a little alarmed. As yet,
however, she had no inkling of the plot.

"More snow out this way. This bare ground is hard on the runners,"
replied Jim, and indeed the rasping sound of iron on gravel was
irritating to nerves as well.

Jim felt for Molly's hand under the robe, and found it, an ungloved cold
little member. She started and tried to draw it away. In vain! Jim held
on as a man gripping some treasure he meant to keep. Soon they were on
the snow, and then the sleigh glided smoothly with the merry bells
ringing. Soft heavy flakes were falling, wet and cool to the face.

"Heah--turn down heah," called Molly, as they reached the last side
street.

"Boy, drive straight out to the Traft ranch," ordered Jim.

Molly stood up, and would have leaped out of the sleigh had not Jim
grasped her with no uncertain hands, and hauled her down, almost into his
arms. She twisted round to look up at him. The darkness was thick, but he
could see a pale little face, with great staring eyes.

"You--want to get somethin' before takin' me home?" she asked.

"Why, of course, Molly. This is Christmas, you know," he returned,
cheerfully.

"I--I didn't know you could be like this." And Jim imagined he had more
cause to be happy.

No more was said. Jim endeavoured to secure Molly's hand again, but she
had hidden it somewhere. Thwarted thus, Jim put an arm round her. When
they reached the big pine trees, black against the snow, Jim knew they
were nearing the ranch. He nerved himself for the crisis. There was no
use of persuasion or argument or subterfuge. Then the ranch-house loomed
dark, with only one light showing. The bells ceased jangling in a crash.

"Molly, come in for--a minute," said Jim easily, as he stepped out.

"No, thanks, Jim," she replied, with pathos. "I'll stay heah. Hurry, an'
remember--I--I cain't accept no Christmas presents."

Jim leaned over, as if to rearrange the robe, but he snatched her bodily
out of the sleigh.

"All right, boy, drive back," he ordered, and as the bells clashed again
he turned with the kicking Molly in his arms. He heard her voice, muffled
in the furs, as he pressed her tight, and he feared she used some rather
strong language. Up the steps, across the wide veranda and into the dark
ranch-house he packed her, fighting all the while, and on into the
dim-lighted living-room, where he deposited her in his uncle's big
armchair. Then he flew to lock the door. It was done. He felt no
remorse--only a keen, throbbing, thick rapture. He turned up the lamp,
and then lighted the other one with the red shade. Next he removed the
screen from before the smouldering fire, to replenish it with chips of
cedar and pine cones.

"Jim Traft--what've you done?" cried Molly huskily.

Jim turned then, to see her in the chair, precisely as he had bundled
her.

"Fetched you home, Molly," he said, with emotion.

"It was a trick."

"Reckon so."

"You didn't mean to take me to my boardin'-house?"

"I'm afraid I never thought of that."

"An' thet damn Slinger! He was in the deal with you?"

"Yes. Slinger was implicated--to the extent of getting the sleigh."

"Wal, now you got me heah--what you think you're goin' to do?" she
demanded.

"Oh, wish you a merry Christmas and a happy New Year."

"Jim--honest I wish--you the same," she responded, faltering a little.

"Thanks. But it's not Christmas yet," rejoined Jim, consulting his watch.
"Only eleven o'clock. At midnight I'll give you the other Christmas
present."

"Other?--Jim Traft, are you loony? Or am I dreamin'? You didn't give me
nothin'. You tantalised me with thet--thet ring, which was shore low
down. But thet's all."

"Molly, you have one of your presents. You've got it on...That fur coat."

Uttering a cry of surprise and consternation, she bounced out of the
chair to slip out of the rich, dark, fragrant coat. She handled it with
awe, almost reverence, stroked it, and then with resignation laid it over
the table.

"Pretty nice, don't you think?" queried Jim, pleasantly. "Becomes you,
too."

"I'm findin' out you're as much of--of a brute as any cowboy," she
asserted, tearfully. "How'm I to get back to my boardin' house? When
Glory comes? You'll send me then, Jim?"

"Molly, you're not going back to your boarding-house--tonight or ever
again," he replied, confronting her and reaching for her, so that Molly
backed into the armchair and fell into it.

"I am--too," she retorted, but she was vastly alarmed.

"No, this is home, till you've grown out of your school-girl days."

"Kidnappers--you an' Slinger!"

"I reckon we are, Molly."

"You're wuss than Hack Jocelyn," she cried, wildly. "Are you goin' to
hawg-tie me heah?"

"No. I don't believe you'll want to leave, after tomorrow when you see
Uncle Jim and Glory."

"Jim--I cain't see them. It'd hurt too bad. Please let me go."

"Nope...You hurt me, didn't you?"

"All fer your good, Jim...Cain't you see thet?"

"Indeed I can't. You just almost broke my heart, Molly Dunn. If it hadn't
been for Uncle and Glory--Well, never mind. I don't want to heap coals of
fire upon your head."

"What did Uncle Jim an' Glory do?" she asked poignantly.

"They both have faith in you. Faith!"

"I cain't stand thet, Jim, I cain't," she wailed.

He slipped into the big chair and gathered her in his arms. What a tight,
quivering little bundle!

"Molly, both Uncle and Glory love you."

"No--no. Thet's not so," she cried, half-smothered. "Let me go, Jim."

"Ha ha! I see myself...Hold up your head, Molly."

"If you dare kiss me--Jim Traft--I--I...Oh--"

"Don't you dare kiss me, Molly Dunn," added Jim, quite beside himself
now. Molly's lips were sweet fire, and she could not control them. But
she was strong, and as slippery as an eel. Jim had to confine his
muscular efforts to holding her merely.

"Molly, you are mussing a perfectly beautiful little dress," he said,
mildly, "besides, darling, you're making a very indecorous, not to say
immodest, display of anatomy."

"I don't care," panted Molly, red of face, blazing of eye. But she did
care. She was weakening.

"Darling," Jim divined this word had considerable power; at least enough
to make Molly hide her face.

"Sweetheart," he went on.

And this appeared to end her struggling. "Don't you love me, Molly?"

"Thet has been--all the trouble...Too much--to disgrace you," she
replied, haltingly, and she looked up with wet eyes and trembling lips.
Jim was quick to kiss them, and when he desisted this time, she lay back
upon his arm, her eyes closed, heavy-lidded, her face pale and rapt.

"Don't you want to stay, Molly?" he went on, tenderly.

"No--no...But I'm a liar," she replied, brokenly, without stirring.

"To be my wife?"

She was mute and therefore won. Jim found the little box in his pocket,
and extracting the diamond ring from it he slipped it upon her finger,
where it fitted tight and blazed triumphantly.

"There!"

Moreover, it had potency to make her eyes pop open. She stared. Slowly
transformation set in. She became ecstatic and ashamed, filled with
sudden wild misery and joy, all at once.

"Oh, I--I've been--jest what Slinger called me," she cried.

"What was that?"

"It's too turrible to tell...How can you be so good--to make me love you
more?...Jim, honest I thought I was thinkin' only of you. If I was fit
for you I wanted to--an' sometimes deep down in me I reckoned I was,
because love ought to count--I wanted to make myself unfit...Yet when
thet mouthin', pawin' Darnell laid hold of me--when I had my chance to
disgrace you an' degrade myself--I couldn't. My very soul went sick. An'
then I only wanted to get free of him at any cost. I did. An' afterwards
he begged so hard, an' I longed so to go to the dance, thet I went."

"Well, I'm glad you did, since we had to have this ruction. But don't
mention Darnell to me again, at least tonight."

"After all, people won't know how bad it was," she said, with a passion
of hope and regret.

"They'll think it only a lovers' quarrel," replied Jim, happily, and he
was glad to believe that himself.

"If only Glory will forgive me!"

"Glory! Why, she has already."

"You don't know thet lovely sister of yours, Jim...The more she persuaded
me I was doin' wrong, the kinder an' sweeter she talked, the proud way
she looked--the more I wanted to do some-thin' awful. I wanted to hide
thet I loved her, too...Oh, she seemed so wonderful--so far above me. But
if she'll forgive I'll never do wrong again, so help me Gawd!"

"Molly, that's a vow. I'll hold you to it...And now, honey, make up to me
for all I suffered--for every miserable moment."

"I cain't, Jim," she replied, mournfully. "What's done is done. Oh, if I
only could."

"Well, then for every wretched moment you spent with him. Could you count
how many?"

"I reckon I could," she said, thoughtfully. "What's a moment? Same as a
minute?"

"More like a second. Some are utterly precious, like this one. Others are
horrible."

"Wal, with sixty seconds to the minute and sixty minutes to the hour--an'
I reckon aboot five hours, all told--thet would be how much?--A lot to
make up for!"

"Will you try? That will be your repentance."

"Yes," she promised, shyly, yet fearfully, as if remembering.

"Put your arms up round my neck...There--Now start kissing me once for
every one of those heart-broken minutes."

Molly was not very far on this tremendous penance, considering sighs and
lulls, and spasms of quick tender passion to make amends, when a knock on
the living-room door startled her violently.

"Well, if that isn't tough!" ejaculated Jim, and putting Molly down he
arose to go to the door. "Must be Gloriana May."

And she it was who entered, radiant and beautiful, with swift hopeful
flash of purple eyes that moved from Jim to Molly, and back again. Curly
stepped in behind her.

"Jim, dear, I hope we didn't intrude," she said, sweetly, with mischief
and gaiety underlying her speech. "Were you aware that this is
Christmas?"

"Jim, many happy returns of this heah evenin'--I mean the last of it,"
drawled Curly, as he came forward, so cool and easy, and already within
possession of the facts. "Molly, I've been shore daid sore at you. But
I'm an understandin' cuss...Suppose I kiss you my Christmas greetin's."

And he did kiss her, gallantly, though withal like a brother, while Molly
stood stiff, blushing and paling by turns.

"Curly Prentiss, do you kiss every girl on Christmas?" she had spirit to
retort.

"Nope. Thet privilege I reserve fer particular gurls," he drawled, and
turned to Jim with extended hand. "Boss, I'm shore glad. This is the
second time the Diamond's near been busted. Never no more!...Good-night,
all. I'll see you in the mawnin'."

When Jim had closed the door upon him there was an eloquent silence in
which Gloriana and Molly gazed into each other's eyes. Certain it was
that Jim trembled. Yet his hopes ran high. Molly approached Gloriana and
stood bravely, without trace of the shame Jim knew she felt.

"Glory, I'm heah again--to stay," she said, simply. "Jim kidnapped
me--an' I reckon saved me when he did it...I'm shore powerful sorry I've
been such a dumb-haid. But you cain't doubt my love for Jim, at
least...Will you forgive me?"

Gloriana took Molly into her arms, and bending over her spoke with
emotion. "I do indeed, Molly, as I hope to be forgiven...Come with me to
my room...Goodnight, brother Jim; it's late. We'll see you in the
morning."



CHAPTER THIRTEEN

Snell's gambling-hall was crowded on the afternoon of Christmas Day, when
Jim Traft and Curly Prentiss arrived rather late. Evidently no open
sesame was required on this occasion, and no doortender. Curly said this
was because the business-men of Flagerstown, who liked to buck the tiger,
would be conspicuous for their absence on this holiday. But there would
be a big game going, and Darnell would be in it.

Curly appeared to be under the influence of liquor, which Jim knew he was
most decidedly not. But Curly excited no interest whatever, for the good
reason that he differed very little in garb and manner from other cowboys
present. Some, in fact, were hilariously drunk.

They strolled around to watch the faro game, the roulette wheel, and
other games of chance or less busy with customers, until they approached
a ring of lookers-on which surrounded the heavy poker game. Curly wanted
to sit in, provided Darnell was one of the players. By looking over the
heads of spectators they ascertained that Darnell was indeed there, and
also Bambridge. Then Curly whispered to Jim that the other three gamblers
were precisely the same he and Bud had watched yesterday afternoon.

"All set," concluded Curly, his blue eyes flashing like a northern sunlit
sky. "Big game an' all daid sore. Darnell is ridin' them high an'
handsome."

Then he turned to the circle of watchers and lurched into it. "Heah,
lemme in, you geezers," he called out, in a loud and good-natured drawl.
"I'm a-rarin' to set in this heah game."

But Curly's action was more forceful. Without waiting for the men to open
up he swept them aside. Jim followed until he secured a place just back
of the front row, where he could see and yet keep out of sight.

"Gennelmen, I wanna set in," said Curly. "There's only five of you heah.
Thet shore ain't no good game. You oughta have six. An' heah I am."

Darnell looked up and gave Curly a hard glance. But if it were one of
recognition he certainly did not connect Curly with the little meeting in
Winslow some time previous.

"This is poker for men of means and not casino for two-bit cowpunchers,"
he said.

"Hell you shay," replied Curly, without offence, as he wiped a hand
across his face, after the fashion of the inebriated. "Reckon you don't
savvy I ain't no two-bit cowpuncher."

"Get out or I'll have you thrown out," snarled Darnell. His concentration
on the game was such that an interruption jarred him. Yet even in anger
there was no heat in the sharp dark eyes. His cheek and the line of his
chin were tight. Here Jim saw the man as a handsome cold-faced gambler.

"My Gawd! man, you must be a stranger heahaboots," drawled Curly, and he
clumsily pulled out the one vacant chair and fell into it, knocking
against the table. With one hand he dropped his sombrero beside the chair
and with the other he slammed down a huge roll of greenbacks, the outside
one of which bore the number one hundred.

"My money ain't counterfeit, an' I reckon it's as good as anybody's,"
said Curly, lolling over the table in the careless laxity of a drunken
man. His curly hair, wet and dishevelled, hid his eyes. He gave his mouth
and chin the weakness characterising the over-indulgence in drink.

At sight of the roll of greenbacks Darnell's eyes leaped, but before he
could speak, which it was evident he intended to do, Bambridge came out
with: "Sure your money's as good as anybody's, cowboy. Sit in an'
welcome."

"Much obliged, Mister," replied Curly, gratefully, as he snapped the
rubber band off his roll. "What's the game, friends?"

"You make your own game. No limit," replied the dealer, who happened to
be the man from Winslow. "Your ante."

"Make it five call ten," drawled Curly, but he laboured long over the
huge roll of greenbacks trying to find one of small numeration.
"Dog-gone!--This heah legacy of mine is shore dwindlin' of change."

The game proceeded then with Curly apparently a lamb among wolves. Still,
though betting with reckless abandon, he did not risk much. "Dog-gone-it!
Wait till I get some cairds," he complained, "an' I'll show you fellars
how a cowboy bets."

Upon Darnell's next deal the play was a jack-pot, with the dealer's
privilege of making the ante.

"Throw in one of your hundreds, cowboy," he said, as he chipped in one
hundred dollars.

"Wal, century plants ain't nothin' in my young life," drawled Curly.
"There you air, my Mississippi River gazabo."

Darnell gave a slight start, and eyed the cowboy intently. Curly's head
was bent rather low, as usual, with his eyes hidden under that wave of
bright hair any girl might have envied. He was smiling, easy, and happy
in the game. Perhaps his remark was merely a chance one and meant
nothing. But Jim's reflection was that Darnell certainly did not know
cowboys of the Arizona-range stripe.

The Winslow man opened the jack-pot, the two players between him and
Curly stayed, and then Bambridge raised before the draw. Presently they
were all in, in a jack-pot carrying more than six hundred dollars. The
watchers of the game looked on with intense interest. Each player called
for what cards he wanted. Darnell said casually: "Three for myself--to
this little pair." And he slid the three cards upon the table and laid
the deck aside.

Suddenly like a panther Curly leaped. His left hand shot out to crack
down upon Darnell's and crush it flat on the table. Then his right
followed, clutching a big blue gun, which he banged on the table, making
the players jump, then freeze in their seats. Curly sank back and threw
up his head to show blazing eyes as clear as crystal. His frank young
face set cold. How vastly a single moment had transformed him!

Darnell turned a greenish livid blue. He had been trapped. Malignance and
fear betrayed him.

"You--low-down ---- of a caird sharp!" drawled Curly, in a voice with a
terrible edge. "You reckoned I was drunk, eh?"

The circle of men back of Darnell split and spread, with shuffling feet
and hoarse whispers, in two wings, leaving the space there clear. That
act was as significantly Western as Curly's. Jim had seen it before.

"Don't anybody move a hair," ordered Curly, and the pivoting of his gun
indicated the other players. Bambridge gasped. Only the Winslow man
remained cool. Perhaps he knew or guessed the nerve behind that
gun-hammer, which plainly rose a trifle, sank back, to rise again, almost
to full cock.

"Gentlemen, look heah," went on Curly, bitingly, and he turned Darnell's
crushed hand over. Bent and doubled in his palm were three cards that
dropped out. Aces!

"Pretty raw, I must say," spoke up the Winslow man. "At that, I had a
hunch."

"Darnell, we Westerners don't often hang caird sharps, like we do cattle
thieves. But on second offence we throw a gun," said Curly, and the
menace of him seemed singularly striking. Then in the same cool,
careless voice he called Darnell all the profane epithets, vile and
otherwise, known to the range. "You get out of Flag. Savvy?...An' any
time anywhere after this--if you run into me--you pull a gun!"

Darnell whirled on his chair, knocking it to the floor, and he rushed
through the opening in the crowd to disappear.

Curly moved the gun, by accident or intent--no one could tell--until it
had aligned itself with Bambridge.

"Mister Bambridge, you've laid yourself open to suspicion round
heah--long before this poker game," said Curly, as cutting as before. "I
told your daughter thet, an' naturally it riled her. I reckon she's a
fine girl who doesn't savvy her Dad."

"Who the hell is this hyar lyin' cowpuncher?" demanded Bambridge, yellow
of face, as he appealed to the other players.

Curly's arm moved like a snake. "Don't you call me liar twice!...I'm
Curly Prentiss, an' I belong to the Diamond. We are on to you, Bambridge,
if no other outfit round heah is. We know you're a damn sight crookeder
cattle thief than Jed Stone himself...Now listen closer. What I said
aboot gun play to your gamblin' new hand, Darnell, goes for you, too.
Savvy?...Right now an' heah, or anywhere after."

"You--you drunken puncher--you'll pay for this hold-up of an
innocent--and unarmed man," panted Bambridge, as he got up his face
ghastly, sweating, and his eyes bulging with a fury of passions. He swept
the edge of the crowd aside and thumped away.

"Gentlemen, I apologise for breaking up your game," said Curly, sheathing
his gun. "But I reckon I saved you money. Suppose we divide what's on the
table an' call it quits."

"Agreed," replied the Winslow man, gruffly. "Prentiss, we sure owe you a
vote of thanks."

It was Jim, and not Curly, who told the rest of the Diamond what had
happened at Snell's late on Christmas Day.

It seemed incredible to Jim that the quiet evening at home was real. How
strange to glance at Curly now and recall the tremendous force he had
exhibited at Snell's only a few hours before! He was so easygoing, so
droll and tranquil, as he unmercifully teased Molly, subtly including
Gloriana in his philosophy.

"You cain't never tell aboot girls, Jim," he said, sorrowfully. "I've
shore had a deal of experience with all kinds. Redheaded girls, I reckon,
are best to gamble on. Blondes are no good. Brunettes are dangerous.
They're like mules, an' fer a spell will be powerful good, just to get a
chance to kick you. Christmas an' birthdays, though, a fellar's girl can
be relied upon to stand without a halter. But these girls between blondes
an' brunettes, the kind with hair like the ripple of amber moss, an' eyes
like violets under water--they're scarce, thank the Lord...I've heahed of
a few, only never saw but one."

Uncle Jim roared. Molly threw something at Curly, while Gloriana was
convulsed with laughter. Curly evidently was a perpetual source of
surprise, delight, and mystery to Gloriana. There dawned in Jim a hope
that she would grow to find more.

They had a pleasant hour in the bright living-room, then the rancher left
the young folk to themselves. Curly stayed a while longer.

"Wal," he said, presently, "I'll say good-night, Miss Glory."

"What's your hurry?" queried Gloriana, in surprise. "Don't be so
outlandishly thoughtful of my brother. He and Molly don't know we
exist...Oh, maybe you want to go to town."

"Wal, I had thought aboot it," drawled Curly.

"And maybe join in the general painting the Diamond is giving Flag?" went
on Gloriana.

"Wal, they shore cain't do much paintin' or anythin' without me," he
admitted, his keen blue eyes studying Gloriana.

Despite Gloriana's conviction of Jim's utter absorption, he still had
eyes and ears for his sister and his best friend. Molly saw nothing
except the ruddy coals of the fire, until Jim gave her a nudge.

"Very well, Mister Prentiss, good-night," said Gloriana, icily, as she
rose.

"Say, do you care a whoop aboot whether I get drunk or not?" demanded
Curly, his face flaming. Gloriana was the one person who could stir him
out of his nonchalance or coolness.

"Certainly not," replied Gloriana, in amaze. "Why should I?...But you are
my brother's right-hand man. And I had hoped you would develop some
character, for his sake."

"Cain't a man take a drink an' still have some character?" asked Curly,
stoutly.

"Some men can," replied Gloriana, with emphasis that excluded Curly from
her generalisation.

"Wal, I reckon I'll go get drunk. Goodnight, Miss Traft."

"Good-bye!...Mister Prentiss."

Curly departed hastily. His heavy steps sounded faster and faster, until
they died away.

"Jim, this Curly cowboy irritates me," remarked Gloriana, coming to the
fire.

"What?--Oh, I'm sorry, Glory.' I thought you liked him," replied Jim
innocently.

"I do. He's a fine upstanding chap, so kind, easygoing, and big-hearted.
He worships you, Jim. And, of course, that goes a long way with me. But
it's the other side of him I can't--savvy, isn't it? It's that plagued
cowboy side...For instance, just a moment ago he saw you holding Molly's
hand. So he possessed himself of mine. And I give you my word I could
hardly get it away from him."

How sweet to hear Molly's laugh trill out! And the perplexity of Glory's
expressive face, with its suggestion of colour, likewise pleased Jim.

"Glory, the way to get along with Curly--and amuse yourself--is to let
him hold your hand," said Jim.

"Don't be silly. I--I did that very thing, at the dance, until I got
scared. In fact, I scarcely knew I was letting him."

"Glory, I told you Curly was the finest fellow I ever knew, for a man's
friend, or a pard, as they call it out West. If you could stop his
drinking he'd be that for a woman, too."

"I want to stop his drinking," admitted Gloriana, now gravely, "but I--I
am not prepared to--to--"

"Sure you're not," interposed Jim, apologetically. "Don't misunderstand
me, Glory. On the other hand, don't be cold to Curly just because you
wasted some admiration--and sentiment--perhaps some kisses and caresses
that would have raised poor Curly to the seventh heaven--on that Ed
Darnell..."

Next morning the bunk-house was incredibly quiet when Jim knocked and
stamped in. Jeff was cooking a lonely breakfast. "Outfit's stampeded,
Boss. I seen it comin'."

"Dog-gone their hides!" complained Jim. "Now I'm afraid to go downtown."

Before he started, however, he consulted his uncle and advised a
postponement of Molly's party until New Year's Eve.

"Fine idee," agreed the rancher. "But don't be hard on the boys, Jim.
Remember that Diamond was the toughest outfit in Arizona. Lovable
punchers, if I ever knew any, but sure blue hell on holidays. Better go
downtown an' drag them out. Reckon thet four-flush Sheriff Bray had his
chance at us last night. Don't tell the girls."

Jim had no intention of that, though so far as Molly was concerned she
would know. He had a talk with Ring Locke and told him about the affair
at Snell's. The foreman seemed both vastly concerned and pleased.
"Son-of-a-gun, thet Prentiss boy...Jim, thet'll settle Bambridge. He'll
have to shoot or git out. An' he ain't the shootin' kind. All the same, I
wish the Diamond was out of town."

Some of the cowboys might as well have been out of town, for all Jim
could find of them. Jackson Way, of course, had gone to Winslow with his
girl. Hump, Cherry, and Uphill had disappeared, after a bloodless and
funny fight with some rival cowboys over a pool game. Lonestar Holliday
was discovered lurching out of a cheap Mexican lodging-house, almost
speechless, and certainly lost to a sense of direction. Jim bundled him
into the buckboard. "Sit on him, Charley," ordered Jim, "and take him
home. Then hurry back."

Bud was in jail, and all Jim could find out, in the nature of offence,
was a charge of disorderly conduct, including unusual profanity. Bray,
the sheriff, was not to be found on the moment, and probably that was a
good thing for all concerned. Bud was locked up with a tramp, two
Mexicans, and a Navajo, and a madder cowboy Jim never had seen. "Boss,
I'm gonna shoot thet--coyote of a sheriff!" he asserted. Jim paid his
fine and got him out, greatly relieved that it had been no worse.

"Where's Curly?" demanded Jim.

"Shore haven't the slightest idee. I reckoned he'd stay home on
Christmas--considerin'."

"When'd you see him last?"

"Yestiddy sometime, I think it was, but I ain't shore. The last time I
seen him was when he was helpin' Miss Glory in the sleigh, after the
dance. My Gawd! you'd took him fer the Prince of Wales."

"Then you went an' got drunk?"

"Must have, Boss, or suthin' like. My haid feels sorta queer."

Jim went back to the ranch considerably concerned over Curly's
disappearance. Lonestar and Bud were back, and late that night Uphill
came, so Ring Locke informed Jim. The next day and the next passed. On
the third Hump and Cherry rolled in, more or less dilapidated. But no
Curly! Jim discovered that he was not the only one who missed the
drawling-voiced cowboy. Gloriana passed from coldness to disdain and then
to pique, and from that to a curiosity which involved her own state of
mind as well as interest in Curly's whereabouts.

"Curly is a proud fellow," observed Jim, for Gloriana's benefit, though
he directed the remark to his uncle. "Belongs to a fine old Southern
family. Rich before the war. He has taken offence at something or other.
Or else he's just gone to the bad. I don't know what the Diamond will do
without him."

Later, Gloriana, with one of those rare flashes of her eyes, said to Jim:
"Brother mine, your remarks were directed at me. Very well. The point is,
not what the Diamond will do without Curly, but what I will."

"Glory!--What are you saying?" expostulated Jim, both thrilled and
shocked. "It's just pique. You don't care a rap for Curly. But because he
bucked against your imperious will your vanity is hurt."

"Some of your deductions are amazingly correct," retorted Gloriana,
satirically. "But you're off on this one. And I'm afraid your prediction
about my bucking up the Diamond must be reversed. If you were not blind
you'd see that."

"Glory, hang on to this strange new, sweet, loving character you've
developed, won't you?"

"I'll hang on for dear life," laughed Gloriana, finally won over.

The last day of the old year dawned--the day of Molly's party. The
cowboys, excepting Bud, had given up ever expecting to see Curly Prentiss
again, who, they claimed, had eloped. Bud, however, was mysterious. "You
cain't ever tell aboot thet son-of-a-gun. He'll bob up, mebbe."

Jim was not sanguine, and felt deeply regretful. Had he unduly lectured
Curly? But he could not see that he had, and he resigned himself to one
of those inexplicable circumstances regarding cowboys, which he had come
to regard as inevitable.

Jim's small family were all in the living-room early that morning,
planning games for the party, when there came a familiar slow step
outside, and a knock on the door, Jim opened it.

There stood Curly, rosy-cheeked as any girl, smiling and cool as ever.

"Mawnin', Boss," he drawled.

"How do, Curly...Come in," replied Jim, soberly. It was too sudden for
him to be delighted.

Curly sauntered in. He wore a new coloured blouse, new blue jeans, and
new high top-boots, adorned with new spurs. He did not have on a coat or
vest, the absence of which brought his worn gun-belt and gun into
startling prominence.

"Mawnin', folks. I dropped in to wish you-all a happy New Year," he
drawled.

Uncle Jim, Molly, and Gloriana all replied in unison. The old rancher's
face wreathed itself into smiles; Molly looked delighted; and Gloriana
tranquil, aloof, with darkening eyes.

"Where you been--old-timer?" queried Jim, coolly. Curly's presence always
steadied him, whether in amaze, anger, or indecision.

"Wal, I took a little holiday trip to Albuquerque--to see a sweetheart of
mine," replied Curly. "Shore had fun. I wanted particular to brush up on
dancin'. An' my girl Nancy shore is a high stepper. I got some new steps
now that'll make Bud green."

"Albuquerque!" exclaimed Jim, beginning to realise this was Curly
Prentiss.

"Curly, I never heahed of no Albuquerque girl before," said Molly,
bluntly.

"Molly, this was one I forgot to tell you aboot."

"Did you fetch her down for my party?"

"No. I couldn't very well. Nancy's married an' her husband's a jealous
old geezer. But I shore would have loved to fetch her."

It was the expression in Molly's big dark eyes that gave Jim his clue.
The cowboy did not live who could deceive Molly Dunn. Curly's story was a
monstrous fabrication to conceal his drunken spree. Yet how impossible to
believe this clear-faced, clear-eyed cowboy had ever been drunk! Not the
slightest trace of dissipation showed in Curly's handsome fair face. He
looked so innocent that it was an insult to suspect such a degrading
thing. Suddenly Molly shrieked with mirth, which had the effect of almost
startling the others.

"Say, anythin' funny aboot me?" queried Curly, mildly.

"Oh, Curly Prentiss! You're so funny I--I could kiss you."

"Wal, come on. I've shore been in a particular kissable spell lately."

Gloriana was the quiet, wondering one of the group. She had been gullible
enough to believe Curly's story, and had no inkling from Molly's mirth.
Moreover, the growing light in her beautiful eyes gave the lie to cool
indifference to Curly's presence. She was too cool. Gloriana could never
wholly hide her true feelings. That was part of the price she had to pay
for those magnificent orbs of violet.

"Molly," put in Jim, "if you have an urge to kiss anybody, you can come
to me. I won't have you wasting kisses on this handsome, heartless
cowboy...Well, let's get back to our plans for the party...Curly, we'd be
glad to have you sit in with us on this discussion--that is, of course,
if you're coming to the party."

"Wal, you shore flattered me, postponin' Molly's party once on my
account," he drawled, with a blue flash of eyes upon Gloriana. "An' I
wouldn't want you to do thet again. I gave up the society of a wonderful
damsel to come to this heah party."

"You dog-gone lovable fraud!" burst out Molly, unable longer to conceal
her feelings.



CHAPTER FOURTEEN

The day after the New Year gaieties they rode forty miles ahead of the
chuck-wagon, down out of the snow and cold, to the sunny cedared and
pinoned forest. Back to saddle and chaps, sourdough biscuits and
flapjacks, to chopping wood and smoky campfires--in a word--back to the
range! And as if by magic they were all in a day the same old Diamond.
Jim felt that he could burst with pride and affection. Where was there to
be found another group like this? Yet that was only his personal opinion,
for Uncle Jim and Locke had laughed at his conceit and told him of other
noted Arizona outfits. "You get an outfit that sticks together for a
spell--anywhere in Arizona--an' you have the makin's of another Diamond,"
declared Locke.

The fourth day they rode along their blazed trail, down into wild and
beautiful Yellow Jacket. All the long way down that zigzag trail Jim
whistled or stopped his horse at the turns to gaze down. Once he heard
Bud remark, laconically: "My Gawd! it must be great to be in love like
the boss. Jest soarin'. He'll come down with a hell of a thump pronto."

Jim laughed at Bud, but a couple of hours later, when he gazed at a huge
blackened, charred mass, all that remained of the wonderful peeled pine
logs which had been cut to build his ranch-house, he did come down with a
sickening thump.

"Haw haw!--Reckon the Hash-Knife has had a party, too," yelled Bud,
shrilly.

"Croak Malloy's compliments, Boss. See the latest cut in the aspen
there," added Curly, grimly, pointing to the largest of the beautiful
white-barked quaking-asps near at hand.

Curly had sharp eyes. Jim dismounted and walked over to the tree. The
crude, yet well-fashioned outline of a hash-knife had been cut in the
bark, and inside the blade was the letter M. Jim had seen enough of these
hash-knife symbols to be familiar with it, but not before had he noticed
the single letter. That was significant. It seemed to eliminate Jed
Stone. In a sudden violent burst of temper Jim wheeled to his men and
cursed as never before in his life.

According to Slinger the tracks around the cabin site and pile of charred
logs were old, and probably had been made the day after the Diamond rode
home to Flagerstown before Christmas.

"Which means the Hash-Knife had a scout watching us," asserted Jim,
quickly.

"Boss, you shore hit it on the haid," remarked Curly, admiringly.

"Dog-gone if he ain't gettin' bright," agreed Bud.

"Speaks kinda bad fer me, but I shore do think jest thet," went on
Slinger.

"Slinger, all you could hope to do heah is watch the trails down in the
canyon," said Curly. "Thet greaser of Jed Stone's, the sheep-herder
Sonora, has been keepin' tab on us from the rim."

Jim drew a deep hard breath that actually hurt his lungs. "God, it is
hell--to wake up to this!...Boys, my softy days are past. We'll start
this long job slow, and watch as much as we work. Slinger, your job is
the same as before, only it's more. Bud, you hunt meat for camp, and I
don't need to tell you what else."

Slinger spied upon the Hash-Knife camp, reporting several of their number
absent. They were inactive, waiting for spring. "I couldn't get no closer
than top of a rock wall," said Slinger. "But I seen Stone, walkin' to an'
fro, his haid bent, as if he had a load on his back. Couldn't make out
Malloy, an' reckon he's away. Same aboot the greaser."

"Take my field-glasses next time," said Jim, tersely. "We want to know
who's there and what they're doing."

When more days, that lengthened into weeks, passed without any sign on
the part of Stone's gang that they were even aware of the return of the
Diamond to Yellow Jacket, Jim felt the easing of a strain.

"Wal, we'll heah from them when Malloy comes back," said Curly,
meditatively. "He'll come. I cain't conceive of thet hombre bein' daid or
quittin' this range. Can you, Slinger?"

"Not till he raises some more hell," returned the backwoodsman. "Malloy
an' thet Texan an' the greaser must be down-country, hatchin' up
somethin', or huntin' up cattle to rustle in the spring."

"Wal, spring will be heah some fine mawnin'," replied Curly. "An',
dog-gone-it, Jim, your uncle will be shovin' all thet stock down in heah.
He's in too darn big a hurry."

"Anyway, Uncle can't be stopped," rejoined Jim. "This rustler nest has
long been a sore spot with him. And really, he doesn't see any more than
a scrap or two for us, like we had with the Cibeque. The Hash-Knife
outfit simply doesn't faze Uncle Jim."

"He's shore a tough old cattleman an' he's been through the mill. But I
cain't agree with him aboot only a little scrap or two. Shore there may
be aboot only one."

Besides Spring, March also brought the vanguard of Mexican labourers to
blast out and grade the road down into Yellow Jacket. Already the road
was cut and levelled through the forest to the rim. And at the nearest
ranch lumber and framework, cement and pipe, bricks and hardware, had
begun to arrive.

Coincident with this arrived also more food supplies, and mail and news,
all of which were avidly devoured by the cowboys. Curly had received a
letter which rendered him oblivious to his surroundings, even to Bud's
sly intrusions into his dream. Jim's uncle had taken Gloriana to
California, while Molly went to stay with Mrs. Locke and diligently
pursued her studies.

"Jim, lemme see thet letter from Miss Glory," asked Bud, casually, "I
jest want to admire thet lovely handwritin'."

And the innocent Jim handed over the letter.

"I knowed it," declared Bud, after a quick glance, but on the moment he
did not explain what it was he knew. Jim guessed readily enough that Bud
had seen the handwriting on Curly's letter, and now he was in possession
of the secret of Curly's trancelike abstraction.

News from Uncle Jim and Ring Locke, from friends of the cowboys, from the
weekly newspaper recently started in Flagerstown, furnished debate, not
to mention endless conversation, for many a camp-fire.

Bambridge had sent his family away from Flagerstown, no one knew where,
and had moved to Winslow to conduct his cattle business. Darnell had not
been seen in town since Christmas, when he boarded a late east-bound
train, after buying a ticket for Denver. But a cowboy friend of Uphill's
had seen Darnell in Holbrook right after the New Year, and hinted that he
kept pretty well hidden there. Croak Malloy had shot a man in Mariposa,
according to range rumour. Blodgett, who operated a ranch south of the
brakes, complained of spring rustling.

"Uncle Jim says to expect our five thousand head of cows and calves, with
a sprinkling of steers, just as soon as the road dries up...Darn his
stubborn hide!"

The road came on down into Yellow Jacket, and all too soon the horde of
bawling cattle followed, to spread over the great wild canyon and to go
on down into the brakes below, and on their heels rolled the wagons with
materials for Jim's ranch-house. It took days to transport the lot. And
meanwhile the two builders Jim's uncle had sent down drove the cowboys to
desperation with log-lifting. Jim laboured mightily with them, and had
the joy of the primitive pioneer, in seeing his habitation go up in the
wilderness. Bud ran a pipe-line from Yellow Jacket spring, and had water
on the place before the house was up. The canyon had never resounded to
such unfamiliar noise. Its tranquillity had been disrupted. And this kept
on while the log-house grew, one log above the other, and the
high-peaked, split pine-shingle roof went on, with its wide eaves sloping
out over wide porches. Then while the carpenters were busy with the
floors and windows and inside finish, the big barn was started, and long
slim poles cut and hauled for corrals.

It was well on in May when the expert workmen left to go back to
Flagerstown, leaving Jim possessed of a spacious new pine-house that
flashed yellow in the sunlight. But much labour there was still, and Jim
realised it would take months before that habitation coincided with the
picture in his mind.

"Jim, heah you have a log-cabin palace aboot ready," drawled Curly, and
did not add whether he meant ready for furniture or a bride or for
another bonfire for the rustlers.

"Wal, the longer thet Hash-Knife waits the wuss they'll ride over us,"
summed up the pessimistic Bud.

"Boss, it's shore the range twenty miles an' more down in the brakes
that'll take our cattle," added Curly. "You can pen up a few hundred haid
heah in the canyon. But your range is below. An' thet damned country is
big, an' lookin' for a lost cow will be huntin' fer a needle in a
haystack. It's yours, though, an' worth fightin' fer. You can double your
stock in two years. Grass an' water mean a fortune to a rancher. To find
'em an' hang on to 'em--thet's the ticket."

"Aw, you gotta hang on to the cattle," rejoined Bud. "I've known many a
rancher who'd made his pile--if he could only have hanged on."

"Wal, it's lucky fer Jim thet the Hash-Knife is peterin' out."

"Shore...Say, did you fellars heah a rifle-shot?" Curly threw up his head
like a listening deer.

"By gum, I heerd somethin'," replied Bud. "What's strange about it--if
you did?" queried Jim, uneasily.

"Get back under the porch," ordered Curly, sharply. "We made one mistake
aboot buildin' this cabin. A good rifle could reach you from thet cliff."

"Wal, it's a safe bet Hump heerd some-tin'. Look at him."

The cowboy designated by Bud's speech and finger appeared hurrying under
the pines toward the cabin.

"Shot came from high up," observed Curly, warily. "Back a ways from the
rim. I wonder would Slinger be up there?"

"Slinger'd be anywhere he ought to be," said Lonestar.

They waited for Hump.

"Fellars," he said, sharply, running up on the porch, "I heerd a
forty-four crack up on the rocks."

"We heahed a rifle-shot, Hump. But I couldn't swear to it's bein' a
forty-four...Thet would be Slinger."

"Mebbe shot a deer on the way to camp."

"An' pack it around an' down? Not much. Somethin' wrong. You could hear
it in thet shot."

The Diamond waited, with only one member absent; and every moment
increased speculation. When Slinger appeared down the trail there was
only one exclamation, which was Curly's "Ahuh!"

They watched the backwoodsman glide along. He had the stride of the
deer-stalker.

But there seemed to be force and menace, something sinister, in his
approach.

"Packin' two rifles," spoke up the hawk-eyed Curly. "An' what's thet
swingin' low?"

"Pard, it's a gun-belt," declared Bud.

"By Gawd! so it is!" ejaculated Curly, and then, as they all watched
Slinger come on, he sat down to light a cigarette. "Boss," he said,
presently, now with his lazy drawl, "I reckon you have one less of the
Hash-Knife to contend with."

"Wal, it's been some time comin'," added Bud, as if excusing a flagrant
omission.

Slinger soon reached the porch. His dark face betrayed nothing, but his
glittering eyes were something to avoid. He laid a shiny worn carbine on
the ground, muzzle pointing outward. It was the kind of rifle
range-riders liked to carry in a saddle sheath.

"Wal, Slinger, what'd you fetch it heah thet way fer?" demanded Curly,
sharply.

"Dog-gone if it ain't cocked!" exclaimed Bud. Jim, too, had just made
this discovery.

"Jest the way he left it," replied Slinger. "I wanted to show you-all
how near somethin' come off."

He went over to touch the trigger, which action discharged the rifle with
a spiteful crack.

"Funny it didn't go off up there," observed Slinger. "Hair trigger, all
right." Then he laid a gun-belt full of shells, and also burdened with a
heavy bone-handled gun, at Jim's feet on the edge of the porch. But Jim
did not have any voice just then. He sensed the disclosure to come.

"Slinger, whose hardware are you packin' in?" demanded Curly.

"Belonged to thet Hash-Knife greaser, Sonora," replied Slinger, who now
removed his cap and wiped his wet face. "I struck his fresh track this
mawnin' down the trail, an' I followed him. But I never seen him till a
little while ago, up heah on the rim. He was lyin' flat on his belly, an'
he shore had a bead on Jim. Pretty long shot for a greaser, but I reckon
it was aboot time I got there."

Jim stood stricken, as he gazed from the porch steps where he had been
sitting up to the craggy rim. Surely not a long shot! He could have
killed a deer, or a man, at that distance. He suddenly felt sick. Again a
miraculous accident, or what seemed so to him, had intervened to save his
life. Would it always happen? Then he became conscious of Curly's cold
voice.

"You----!" cursed that worthy, red in the face, and with a violence that
presupposed a strong emotion. "Heah I've been tellin' you to keep under
cover! Is it goin' to take a million years of Arizona to teach you
things?...My Gawd! boy--thet greaser shore would have plugged you!"



CHAPTER FIFTEEN

Ed Stone regarded his Texas confederate with a long, unsmiling stare of
comprehension.

"Shore, Jed," repeated Pecos, "you're goin' to draw on Croak one of these
days. You cain't help yourself...I'd done it myself if I hadn't been
afeered of him."

"Pecos, you tell me thet?" queried Stone, harshly. "You know then? He's
got you beat on the draw? You're not hankerin' to see?"

"Not a damn hanker, Jed," drawled Pecos. "I'd shore like to see him
daid--the crooked little rattlesnake--but I still love life."

"Ahuh...An' thet's why you're leavin' the Hash-Knife?"

"Not by a long shot, Jed. I'd gone with Anderson, but for you. An' I'd
gone when Malloy killed thet cowboy Reed, who throwed in with us. But I
stuck on, hopin' Malloy had spit out his poison. I'm goin' because I
reckon the Hash-Knife is done. Don't you know thet, too, Jed?"

"Hell! If we are done, what an' who has done us?"

"Reckon you needn't ask. You know. Malloy was the one who took up
Bambridge. Arizona will never stand a cattle thief like Bambridge. She
shore hates him most as bad as Texas. It's Bambridge's pretence of bein'
honest while makin' his big cattle deals thet riles Jim Traft, an' other
ranchers who are the real thing. Mark my words. Bambridge won't see out
this summer."

"Huh! If he doesn't fork over the ten thousand he owes me he shore won't,
you can gamble on thet," returned Stone.

"Wal, all those deals thet have brought us up lately were instigated by
Bambridge. Runnin' off the Diamond brand up at Yellow Jacket an' shippin'
the stock from Winslow--of all the damn-fool deals, that was the worst.
We could have gone on for years heah, appropriatin' a few steers now an'
then, an' living easy. No, Malloy has done us. These last tricks of
his--they make me sick an' sore."

"You mean thet cattle-drive in April, without me knowin'?"

"Not thet particular. I mean buildin' this heah cabin, fer one thing.
Shore it's a fort. An' only twenty miles from Yellow Jacket!"

"Ha ha!--Croak runs up this cabin, he said, because he liked the view
down over the brakes, an' the wall of the Mogollans standin' away there
so beautiful."

"Wal, I ain't gainsayin' the view. But to take Malloy serious, except
regardin' life an' death, is sheer nonsense. He aims to hang on heah
whether you like it or not."

"Mebbe he will hang--an' from a rope," muttered the outlaw.

"Not Croak Malloy! He'll die with his boots on, sober an' shootin'. Don't
have vain hopes, Jed...Malloy will run the Hash-Knife--an' run it to
hell. Take, for instance, these two hombres he's lately rung in on us.
Just a couple of town rowdies, drinkin' up what they steal. No stuff for
the Hash-Knife!"

"I had the same hunch when I seen them," said Stone, pacing to and fro.

"Wal, heah's Lang an' Madden, both scared of Croak, an' they'd
double-cross you any day. An' Sonora, he's Croak's man, as you know.
Right now, Jed, the Hash-Knife, outside of you an' me, is done."

"I reckon so. It's been keepin' me awake nights."

"Wal, then, shake the ornery outfit an' come away with me?"

"Where you goin', Pecos?"

"Reckon I'll lay low fer a spell."

"Shore. But where? I want to know."

"Jed, I'll ride straight for the haid of the Little Colorado. I told you
I had word last fall from an old Texas pard who's layin' low up there."

"Uh-huh, Pecos, have you got any money?"

"Shore. Malloy hasn't won all I had."

Stone turned with a jerk of decision. "All right, Pecos, if I don't join
you up there before the snow flies, you can reckon Malloy's done fer me,
as he has fer the Hash-Knife."

"Jed, shore there's no call fer you to risk an even break with Croak,"
said the Texan, gravely. "He's no square gunman. He'd have murdered young
Traft over there at Yellow Jacket thet day."

"Yes, I remember. An' my kickin' his gun up made him hate me...Honest to
Gawd, Pecos, the only reason I'd ever risk an even break with Croak--if I
did--would be just to see if he could beat me to a gun."

"I savvy. I had the same itch. It's the one weakness of a gunman. It's
plain vanity, Jed. Don't be a damn fool. Come away with me now."

Stone thought for a long moment. "No, not yet. I'm broke. I want thet
money from Bambridge. An' I want to--" His pause and the checking of his
thought suggested an ominous uncertainty of himself rather than meaning
not to confide in the Texan. "But, Pecos, I'll promise you, barrin'
ordinary accidents, thet I'll meet you at the haid of the Little Colorado
sometime before the summer's over."

"Thet shore sounds good," replied Pecos, rising to his lofty stature.
"Shake on thet."

Stone gripped his lieutenant's hand, and their eyes locked as well. It
was one of the moments that counted with men of the open. Then Pecos
strode out to his horse, and while he mounted Stone untied the halter of
the pack-mule.

"Reckon you'd better work out through the woods," he said casually. "If
Croak happened to meet you on the trail he'd be curious. He took
Anderson's desertion as a slap in the face...Good luck, Pecos."

"Same to you, Jed. I'll shore be countin' the days."

Malloy had certainly selected this site for a cabin with more than its
superb view in mind. It stood high up, above a long fan-shaped bare slope
of grass, and had been built in a notch of the great wall of rock. It
could only be approached from the front, facing downhill. The spruce
logs, of which it had been constructed, had been cut right on the spot.
They were heavy, too green to burn for a long time, and significant
indeed were the narrow chinks left open between the logs, some close to
the floor, others breast high, and not a few in the loft. A spring of
clear cold water ran from under the cliff, and the cabin had been erected
right over it. The wall above bulged far out, so far that neither
avalanche nor bullets from any point above could reach the cabin. With
store of meat and provisions a few vigilant and hardened outlaws could
hold that cabin-fort indefinitely. No Arizona posse of sheriff's sworn-in
deputies, or any reasonable outfit of cowboys, were going to rush that
retreat, if it sheltered the Hash-Knife. Stone conceded Malloy's
sagacity. But it was a futile move, simply because he and his new
accomplices would spend very little time there. They had made three
cattle-drives already this spring, one of which was as bold and as
preposterous as the raiding of the last of the Diamond stock on Yellow
Jacket. Bambridge, with his new man, Darnell, was back of these. Stone
had not needed to meet Darnell more than once to get his status. Darnell
would hardly bother the Hash-Knife long. He was too sharp a gambler.
Presently, if he won too much from Croak Malloy, very suddenly he would
turn up his toes.

But it was Malloy who stuck in Jed Stone's craw. Jed had never before
admitted even to himself that he meant to kill the gun-thrower. When,
however, he had intimated so much to Pecos, he realised the grim thing
that gripped him. He did mean to kill Malloy. It had been in his dreams,
in that part of his mind which worked when he was asleep, and now it
possessed him. How and when to do the deed were matters of conjecture;
the important thing was the decision, and Stone imagined he had arrived
at it. Nevertheless, conscience awakened a still small voice. Bad as
Malloy was, he trusted Stone, had fought for him, would do so again at
the drop of a card, and that meant, of course, he stood ready to die for
him. Stone faced the issue uneasily.

"An' the little cuss likes to set here fer the view," soliloquised the
outlaw.

Stone took satisfaction in convincing himself that the Hash-Knife had no
more need of concern about the Diamond. Still, an afterthought was that
he no longer controlled the Hash-Knife. Suppose that doughty old
cattleman, Jim Traft, did throw a few thousand head of steers down into
Yellow Jacket! He was fool enough, and bull-headed enough, to do it. And
if he did, nothing but death could ever prevent Croak Malloy from
stealing them. Wherefore the ghastly idea of death for Malloy again held
sway over Jed Stone.

Stone's quick eye, ever roving from habit, detected movement of grey down
in the foliage. He thought it was a deer until he saw brown and heard a
distant thud of hoofs. Horses! Probably Malloy was returning. But Stone
took no chances with suppositions, and his hand went to the rifle leaning
against the bench.

When three horses emerged from the green below he recognised the first of
the riders to be Madden, but they were halfway up the hill before he made
out that the second was Bambridge. The outlaw's thought changed, and
conjecture that was not friendly to this visit took the place of hard
vigilance. Bambridge riding down into the Black Brakes must certainly
have something to do with Malloy. It was unwise, especially for this
pseudo rancher. Stone arose and walked to the high step.

The dusty horses limped wearily up the hill, to be halted before the
cabin. The men were travel-stained and tired. Bambridge's big face
appeared haggard, and it did not express any pleasure.

"Hullo, Boss! I fetched a visitor," called out Madden, busy with saddle
packs.

"So I see...Howdy, Mr. Bambridge!" replied Stone, coolly.

"Mornin', Stone. I expect you're surprised to see me," said Bambridge,
bluntly.

"Shore am. Glad, though, for more'n one reason," answered the rustler.

Bambridge unstrapped a coat from his saddle, and mounted to the porch,
heavy of step and dark of eye. He flopped down on the bench, dropping his
coat and sombrero. Evidently he had not slept much, and it was plain his
sweaty and begrimed apparel had not been changed for days. He packed a
gun, which Stone had taken note of first.

"Malloy failed to show up," he said, sourly.

"Ahuh. It's a way Croak has. But he'll show up when you least expect him
an' don't want him. Where'd you go to meet him?"

"Tanner's out of Winslow," returned Bambridge, shortly, his dull grey
eyes studying the outlaw, as if he was weighing that remark about Malloy.

"Tanner's. So Malloy meets you there, eh?--Wal, I reckon he might as well
go into Winslow or Flag," said Stone, dryly.

Bambridge seemed uncertain of his ground here, but was indifferent to it.
Stone grasped the fact that the cattle dealer did not take him for the
dominant factor in the Hash-Knife.

"You can bet I'd rather he had. Eighty miles' ride, without a bed, an'
practically nothin' to eat, is enough to make a man bite nails."

"What's the reason you undertook it?"

"It concerns me an' Malloy," said the other.

Whatever sense of fair play Jed Stone felt toward this man--and he
confessed to himself that it was little--departed here.

"Any deals you make with Malloy concern me. I'm boss of this Hash-Knife
outfit."

"Not so anyone would notice it," rejoined Bambridge, with scant civility.

The man was on dangerous ground and had no intimation of it. Steeped in
his absorption of his greedy sordid plans, if he had the wit to
understand Jed Stone he did not exercise it. Stone paced the narrow
porch, gazing out over the brakes. For the moment he would waive any
expression of resentment. Bambridge was in possession of facts and plans
that Stone desired to know.

"Wal, mebbee you're right aboot Croak bossin' the outfit pretty
generally," he said, at length. "But only in late deals that I had little
to do with. What I don't advise I shore don't do. Thet deal of Diamond
cattle last winter--thet was an exception. I've kicked myself often
enough...By the way, you can fork over thet ten thousand you've owed me
on thet deal. I sent Madden in to get it."

"Man alive! I gave the money to Darnell, with instructions to hand it to
Malloy for you," ejaculated Bambridge, in genuine surprise.

"You did? When?"

"Weeks ago. Let's see. It was the ninth of April that I drew that ten
thousand. Next day Darnell was to ride out to Tanner's. He met Malloy
there and delivered your money."

"Not to me," declared Stone.

"Why!--the man is reliable," replied Bambridge, in exasperation. "Are you
quite--honest about it?...Have you seen Malloy since?"

"Wal, Bambridge, I've seen Malloy several times since then. He never
mentioned no money--for me. Appeared to be pretty flush himself,
though...An' much obliged for the hint about my honesty."

Bambridge let the caustic rejoinder go by without apology.

"Honesty is not your trade, Stone. I'll say, though, you've kept your
word to me, which is more than Malloy has...You suspect this new man of
mine, Darnell?"

"No, I don't suspect him. I know him to be a Mississippi gambler, run out
of St. Louis--accordin' to his own statement. I've seen a few of his kind
hit the raw West. They didn't savvy us Westerners an' they didn't last.
Darnell has double-crossed you. He'll try it on Croak Malloy, which will
be bad for his health."

"No wonder Darnell can't savvy you Westerners. Who the hell can, I'd like
to know?"

"Wal, not you, thet's shore."

"Give me proof Darnell has done me dirt?" demanded the other,
impatiently.

"Wal, I saw him right here after the tenth of April--along aboot the
twentieth, I reckon, for it was after Malloy made a raid on Blodgett's
range...Darnell did not give me any money. He had a big roll, for I saw
him flash it when he was gamblin' with the men...Thet was the day Croak
shot young Reed."

"Aw, I'd want more proof than that," returned Bambridge. "You might have
been drunk when Darnell gave it to you."

"Shore. I might have been anythin'. Us outlaws are pretty low-down, I
reckon. But I, for one, am not as low-down as some who call themselves
cattlemen...Bambridge, am I to hold you or Darnell responsible fer thet
ten thousand?"

"Not me, you can bet. Or Darnell, either. Malloy is your man. He seems to
be runnin' your outfit now, an' no doubt appropriated your money."

"Nope. Croak is square aboot money," said the outlaw, meditatively.

"Bah!--What you givin' me?" retorted Bambridge, harshly. "Stone, you talk
queer for a rustler. Here you are, hidden down in this God-forsaken
wilderness afraid to go near any town--with a price on your life, yet you
talk of honesty in yourself an' men. Thet's a joke about honour among
thieves."

"Wal, we needn't argue aboot it," replied Stone. A Westerner would have
gauged something from the cool quality of his voice and the averting of
his eyes. "I've served your turn. An' now thet Malloy is doin' it, why,
you've no call to get nasty. What I'd like to know is--how'd you come to
ride out here? Shore is a long hard ride fer anyone."

"I want action. That's why I came," almost yelled Bambridge, red in the
face. "Malloy has failed me twice, both times because I didn't pay first.
Here I have a chance to sell ten thousand head of cattle--to the
government buyer in Kansas City--an' I haven't the cattle."

"Chance to sell quick an' get out of Arizona, huh?"

"You've hit it, Stone. An' that's why I'm here. I want cattle. Old Traft
lately drove a big herd down into Yellow Jacket. I'm after it. Malloy
agreed to drive it. I've built a corral along the railroad, half-way
between Winslow an' Holbrook. Short-cut idea, see? An' I can load there.
He also agreed to make away with this damned young smart Alec, Jim Traft.
Took the money quick enough, by damn."

"Took what money?" queried Stone, with no apparent interest.

"What I offered for the job," fumed the cattleman. "Then afterward he
said it was the kind of job Croak Malloy couldn't do. But he'd put his
man Sonora on it. A Mexican."

"Job to do away with young Jim Traft," mused Stone, drumming the bench
with his fingers. "Wal, I reckon thet's a fine idee--fer you. I'll tell
you somethin', though. Sonora will never do it."

"More double-crossin', eh?"

"No. The greaser is straight. Funny fer a greaser, ain't it? But he
simply won't, because Slinger Dunn will kill him. I wouldn't go prowlin'
around Yellow Jacket for anythin', an you can gamble Malloy wouldn't,
either."

"So that's why he's slow about drivin' the Diamond cattle. Damn his
crooked mug!...Stone, did you know Malloy was in with that Tanner outfit
an' has been workin' on Blodgett's stock?"

"No. Thet's news to me. Who told you?"

"Darnell. In fact, he made the deal. This was against my orders, I'm
bound to admit. I am pretty sore at him an' I'm through with him. But
Malloy has got to square himself with me."

"Your man is playin' both ends against the middle," observed the outlaw,
thoughtfully. "He's smart enough to try to use Malloy same as you--an'
get a big raid off. Then he, too, can jump Arizona. Wal, my advice is to
be jumpin' quick. We decent rustlers don't work thet way. We never rob
any cattleman of enough stock to ruin him. Thet's why the Hash-Knife has
lasted twenty years."

"My daughter married a cowboy in Flag last winter," said Bambridge. "An'
I'm ready to get out quick, without any advice from you. Can you jack up
Malloy on this job?"

"Shore I can, if I like," replied the outlaw, easily. "I can handle Croak
on any deal, providin' I give him the big share. I'm not keen, though, to
egg him along--for nothin'."

Bambridge was no match for Stone in subtlety. He had been led on to tell
his business with Malloy; now all the outlaw leader wanted to know was
whether or not he had brought the money.

"Malloy wanted twenty thousand dollars," said Bambridge. "That was out of
all reason. He can't deliver cattle enough. So we jawed about it. He came
down to fifteen--an' I've got ten thousand with me. Suppose you persuade
Malloy to make the drive--with as few men as can possibly be needed. An'
the day you land the cattle at my corral I'll fork over the other five
thousand."

"How many cattle?" asked Stone, tremendously interested, but not in any
case in the query he made.

"I don't stipulate any number. Only as many as can be rounded up quick
an' driven out quick."

"Ahuh...Suppose you let me see the colour of thet ten thousand,"
suggested the rustler, as if he needed a little more material persuasion.

Bambridge unbuttoned his bulging vest, and from an inside pocket drew
forth a packet of clean new greenbacks, with the bank wrapper still round
them. He flipped it upon the bench. Money was only so much paper to him!
His large features worked.

"You've as much right to doubt me as I have you," he said, blandly.
"There you are!--Nice fresh green colour!"

"Wal, it ain't so much money, after all, considerin'," reflected Stone.

The cattleman's face fell. He had calculated upon this last card.

"I've got about five hundred more in gold. I'll throw that in. Will you
pull off the deal?" And he jingled the heavy coins, which evidently were
what had made his vest bulge.

Stone's veins leaped as the released blood gushed hot and bursting along
them. All his talk had been pretence, except wherein he had wanted to
find out if Bambridge really carried the money with him.

"Let me see thet, too...The gold! The good old yellow stuff with the
music--an' the hell hid in it."

Bambridge reacted slowly to that suggestion. Something wedged into his
eager one-ideaed mind. Instead of complying with Stone's request he
ceased jangling the gold and snatched up the packet of bills, which he
returned to his pocket. Then he buttoned up his vest.

"Fork it all over!" suddenly called the outlaw, and in a single second
such a remarkable transformation occurred in him that Bambridge's eyes
popped wide.

"Wha-at?" he stammered.

"Hand me thet money."

"I will not. No pay in advance, Malloy."

"Pay hell! I wouldn't drive a steer for you. But I want the ten thousand.
You owe it to me."

"See you in hell first," burst out Bainbridge, furiously. He stood up,
and stepped out as if to go off the porch.

Stone gave him a sudden hard shove, which staggered him backward.
"You--fool! You will brace me on my own ground? Fork over thet money
or--"

"You're a low-down thief! No wonder Malloy's quit standin' for you...An'
if you want to know it--there's talk of collectin' the reward on your
head."

Bambridge's ignorance of such men as Jed Stone could not have been better
expressed. And if he had known how to inflame this outlaw it was doubtful
if he could have done so more subtly. For years that price on Stone's
head had been a thorn in his flesh. There were still a mother and a
father living, not to forget a sacrificed sweetheart; and the thought of
them hearing of this reward was torture.

Stone drew his gun and struck Bainbridge over the forehead. Not a violent
blow, though it brought blood! The cattleman fell over the bench, against
the wall.

"Get that through your thick skull?" demanded Stone, as he menacingly
straddled the bench. "Hyar! Don't pull--"

But Bambridge, like a madman, his face ablaze, reached back toward his
hip.

"Take it then!" hissed the outlaw. His shot broke Bambridge's draw. The
gun slipped out on the floor and spun round. Bambridge uttered a horrible
groan, sagged back, his huge face going out like an extinguished light.

Stone stood an instant. Then with swift movement he picked up the gun
from the floor, fired it into the wall, and dropped it again. Then,
bending over the dead man, he ripped open his vest and extracted the
money, which he transferred to his own pocket. That done, he stepped to
the porch. The gun in his hand still smoked. Sheathing it, he glanced
along the wall of the cliff to see Madden coming on a run. His next move
was to light a cigarette, and his fingers were as steady as a rock. He
had shot Bambridge as he would have a hydrophobia skunk, than which there
was no more despised beast of the wilderness.



CHAPTER SIXTEEN

Madden thumped up to the cabin, breathless and alarmed. "Boss, I
heerd--shootin'," he panted.

"Reckon you did," replied Stone, removing his cigarette to puff a cloud
of smoke.

The right-hand man of Croak Malloy took his cue from that--no need for
concern!

"What come--off?"

"Wal, you can see fer yourself."

Madden stamped up the high porch steps, his beady eyes working as if on
points, until suddenly they fixed on the dead man, the little stream of
red blood running out toward the gun lying on the floor. It seemed to be
an accusing finger.

"----! Throwed on you?" ejaculated Madden, in amaze.

Stone nodded.

"What's thet cut on his haid?" asked the other, curiously.

"Wal, he fell all over the place," replied Stone, casually. "I reckon he
hit the bench...Better search him, Madden."

The outlaw picked up the gun, took a look at the chamber, and laid it on
the bench. Then he extracted watch, papers, and a handful of gold coins
from the pockets, which he placed beside the gun. His next move was to
look for a money-belt.

"Wasn't well heeled," he remarked, in disgust. "I recollect he an' Croak
had a hell of a row at Tanner's. There was a game on. An' Bambridge lost.
Swore he'd never fetch any more money where there was a lot of robbers.
Haw haw!"

"You're welcome to thet, Madden. I shore don't want it."

"Thanks, Boss. An' what about all these papers?"

"Wal, I reckon you can keep them for Croak," said Stone, with humour. "By
the way, Madden, when do you expect him?"

"Today, sure. Thet's why I near rode Bambridge off his laigs gettin'
hyar...What'd you an' Bambridge fight aboot?"

"Wait till Croak comes," replied the rustler leader. "I don't want to
tell it all over again."

"Shall we drag Bambridge an' bury him, or wait fer thet, too?"

"Reckon we'd better wait. Put thet gun back on the floor where you found
it. An' cover him over."

"Haw haw! Pertickler on Croak seein' the evidence, huh?...Don't blame
you. Croak will be a-rarin'. But at thet he wasn't so fond of Bambridge,
an' don't you overlook it."

Call to supper at last brought the outlaw leader inside the cabin, where
bright fire and smoking pans and pots attested to Madden's practical
application to duties surely neglected by others of the Hash-Knife.

"No sign of Croak?" he asked.

"Nary. An' mebbe it's jest as well," replied Stone.

"Shore. Tomorrer you'll feel less testy...Wal, Croak's been in a fight,
you can lay to thet. Else he'd been hyar. I seen him at Tanner's about a
week ago--yep, jest seven days, an' we set the day for me to get hyar
with Bambridge...Thet feller Darnell has messed things up again, I
reckon."

"Madden, I appreciate your cookin', if not your company," said Stone.

"Shore kind of you, Boss," replied the other, sarcastically. "But when
the final row between you an' Croak comes don't take any of it out on me.
I was Croak's pard before we come to the Hash-Knife. An' if I do see some
queer deals I hardly approve of, I can't do nothin'."

"I'll remember thet, Madden;" rejoined Stone, in a surprise he did not
show. "Thet's straight talk. I didn't think it was in you."

They finished the meal, after which Stone smoked in front of the fire,
where Madden presently joined him.

"Forgot aboot thet dead hombre out there," he said. "We ought to have
planted him."

"Maddy, you've slept before where there was a dead man lyin' around."

"Shore. But I ain't crazy aboot it."

After a while, which was mostly silence, they sought their blankets.
Stone's bed happened to be in the corner just inside where Bambridge lay,
and he could smell the blood. Sleep did not come readily, so presently he
got up, and carrying his blankets to another unoccupied bough-couch in
the cabin, he spread them in that. It was a quiet night, with no sound
except a low moan of wind in the caverns of the great overhanging cliff.
And some hours elapsed before Stone fell into slumber.

Next morning he was up with the sun, and something, as black and uncanny
as the vanished night, had left him. Stone walked along the wall, as far
as the intersecting canyon which the rustlers used as a corral for the
horses. He reminded himself that he did this quite often. There seemed no
sense in deceiving himself--would soon be riding away from the rendezvous
and the brakes. Which presupposed that he did not mean to give Malloy a
chance to kill him!

On his return he heard a halloa, and quickening his steps soon turned a
corner of wall to see riders coming up the slope. Three--with pack
animals!

Madden hailed him from the door. "Croak comin' with Blacky an' some
fellar I cain't make out yet."

Stone, in action of which he was unaware, hitched his heavy belt, as if
about to mount a horse or undertake something physical. As he went up the
porch steps his quick eye took in the tarpaulin that hid Bambridge. The
body looked like some covered packs.

"Maddy, no hurry aboot tellin' Croak," said Stone, indicating the dead
man.

"All right, Boss. I'd jest as lief see Croak cheerful as long as
possible."

Then they both went into the cabin, Madden to bustle around the fire, and
Stone to watch through one of the chinks between the logs. The three
rustlers came very slowly up the slope, to halt before the cabin. A lean,
dark rider, the stranger, sagged in his saddle. A bloody bandage showed
from under his sombrero. He was the last to dismount, but they were all
ridden out. Without speaking they threw saddles and packs, and left the
weary horses standing.

"Wal, if thar's anybody home they shore ain't powerful glad to see us,"
said Malloy, gruffly.

Madden ran out, his hands white with flour. "Howdy, men! We seen you
comin', but didn't think it no call fer a brass band."

"Haw!--I should smile not...Anybody hyar?" returned Malloy.

"Only the boss."

Whereupon Stone stalked out, and a singular incomprehensible fact was
that he was glad to see the gunman. Croak radiated the raw hard force of
the range. He was, at best, an ally to depend upon in times that tried
men. On the other hand, Stone certainly had a wavering thought--this was
the moment! Nevertheless, he did not take advantage of it.

"Mornin', Croak. How's tricks?" he said, cheerfully.

"Hullo there, you old son-of-a-gun!" replied Malloy. "Got news fer
you--an' somethin' else."

Malloy limped. Something beside sweat and dust had caked on his worn
yellow chaps--something dark and sinister. Stone's sharp eye caught a
bullet-hole in the leather. Malloy carried a rifle, saddlebag, and an
extra gun-belt, minus shells. His leather jacket looked as if he had
slept in wet clay that had hardened. His crooked face somehow appeared
wonderful to look at, or else Stone's mind at the moment was steeped in
strong feeling. Malloy might have been wearing a death mask, yet his eyes
were alight, and it seemed that in them was a smile. His boots dragged
across the floor, his spurs jangled, as he went into the cabin, to
deposit wearily what he carried.

"Howdy, you cook!" he called. "Then thet four-flush cattle thief didn't
come out?"

"Croak, I've shore got bad news," returned Madden. "But s'pose you rest a
little--an' eat somethin'--before I spring it on you."

"Good idee. I'm glad as a tarantula wasp anyhow...I reckoned Bambridge
wouldn't come...An' mebbe I like it jest as well as if he did. No more
deals fer me with thet----!"

"Sounds good to me, Croak," returned Stone, with satisfaction. "Reckon I
can give you a reason why you can't take up any more deals with
Bambridge. But it's bad news. An' suppose you have a shot at my bottle
first."

Malloy took a long drink of fiery liquor that made him cough huskily and
brought colour to his ashen cheeks.

"Uggh!--if I'd hed thet two days ago mebbe I'd never got hyar," he said,
enigmatically.

"Where's Lang?"

"Ha!--Feedin' the buzzards."

"You don't say," returned the outlaw leader, coolly, though the statement
had struck fire from him. Another of the original Hash-Knife gone! Lang
was not loyal, but he belonged to the old school, and once he had been
respectable.

Slow footfalls thudded up the steps outside, across the porch. The bar of
light from the door darkened. Reeves entered with the lean-jawed
stranger.

"Hed to shoot thet bay. She was bad crippled," announced Reeves.

"Should have been done before," replied Malloy. "Boss, shake hands with
Sam Tanner...Cousin of Joe's from up Little Colorado way."

"Howdy, Tanner," said Stone, civilly, though he did not move toward
Malloy's new man. Perhaps this omission was not noticed, as table and
packs and also Malloy stood between. Tanner merely bowed his bandaged
head, which, with sombrero removed, showed matted hair, and dark stains
extending down over the left temple and ear.

"Must have jagged your haid on a snag or somethin'," went on Stone.

"Nary snag. I got sideways to a lead slug," returned Tanner. He had a low
voice, and a straight, level look from his black eyes. Stone gauged men
of the range with speed and precision. This fellow, since he was kin to
Joe Tanner, and in the company of Croak Malloy, could be only another of
their ilk, but he seemed a man to consider thoughtfully.

"Croak, I reckon you'll be tellin' me you've had a little brush with
somebody," said Stone, dryly.

"Brush?--Haw haw!" rejoined the gunman, and his flaring glance, his crisp
query, and his deadly little croak of a laugh made Stone's flesh creep.
He guessed there were some dead men somewhere who would never tell the
tale of what had happened.

"Wal, take your time tellin' me," drawled the leader.

"Come an' get it," yelled Madden.

"A good stiff drink with some hot grub--an' a fellar's able to go on," he
said, as he rose. "But I'll shore sleep most like our pard Lang hangin'
down there on thet cottonwood."

Stone did not reveal his curiosity; he knew he would soon be enlightened,
and if his intuition was not at fault most weighty things had happened.
But when Malloy drew a heavy roll of soiled greenbacks from his pocket
and tossed it over, Stone could not hide a start.

"Bambridge sent thet money he owed you," said Malloy. "Like the
muddlehead he is he trusted it to Darnell...An' I'm tellin' you, pard, if
it hadn't been fer me you'd never seen it."

"I reckon. Thanks--Croak," replied the outlaw chief, haltingly. This was
one of the surprising attributes of the little gunman. Vicious and
crooked as he was, he yet had that quality which forced respect, if not
more, from Stone's reluctant mind.

Malloy laboriously took off his chaps and flapped them into his corner of
the cabin. Then a bloody wet spot showed on the leg of his jeans. "Some
hot water, Maddy, an' a clean rag. I've a crease on my laig."

"What's the fellar got who gave you thet cut, Croak?" queried Stone.

"He got nothin', wuss luck. I was shore damn near my everlastin', Jed,
an' don't you overlook it...Sam, you better have Madden wash thet bullet
hole of yours. He's pretty handy."

Stone curiously watched the deft Madden dress the wounds of the injured
rustlers.

In due time the ministering was ended, after which Malloy asked for
another drink. "Reckon I'd better get some of my news off my chest. Then
after I hear yours I'll have a nap of about sixteen hours...Boss, would
you mind comin' out on the porch where I can set down an' talk?"

They went outside, and Stone experienced a qualm when Malloy hobbled to
his favourite seat. The foot of his injured leg rested upon what he must
have thought was a pack, but it happened to be Bambridge's head under the
tarpaulin.

"Jed, you know thet trapper's cabin down hyar a ways--reckon aboot three
hours' stiff ridin'?--Thet old one under the wall, where a spring runs
out by a big white sycamore?"

"Shore I know it. Slept there often enough. Full of mice an' bugs."

"Wal, it ain't no more," said Malloy, with a grim chuckle. "It's a heap
of ashes."

"Burnt, eh? What you fellars doin'--burnin' all the cabins around?"

"Hell no. We didn't do it. That darned Slinger Dunn!"

"Ah, I see...Wal, Slinger is a bad hombre. Too much like an
Apache!...Hope you didn't brush with the Diamond."

"Jed, your hopes air only born to be dashed. Me an' you left of the
Hash-Knife, 'cept Maddy hyar--an' you can lay it to thet damned slick
tracker Dunn an' the outfit he's throwed in with. You oughta have killed
him long ago."

"Not so easy to do as to say," replied Stone, sarcastically.

"Ha--you're talkin'. Wal, I had a chanct to kill Slinger, but it'd have
meant me gettin' it too."

"You're learnin' sense late--mebbe too late, Croak...I hope to God,
though, you didn't raid this new stock of Jim Traft's."

"No, Jed, we didn't," replied Malloy, frankly. "I was sore at you fer
talkin' ag'in' it, but after I got away an' seen what a mess Bambridge
an' his card sharper got me into I changed my mind. Not that I wouldn't
of druv the cattle later! But this hyar wasn't the time. An' if Bambridge
had come to meet me hyar, as he promised, with a new deal on fer this
Diamond stock, I'd shore have taken the money, but I wouldn't have made a
single move. Not now."

"Wal, you puzzle me. Suppose you quit ridin' round in a circle," declared
Stone, impatiently.

"Fust aboot the money Bambridge sent you by Darnell," began Malloy. "I
seen he was flush at Tanner's, an' he was losin' fer a change. Joe is
pretty keen himself with the cairds. I set in till I was broke. We hung
round Joe's ranch fer a week, waitin', an' finally I got wind of this
backhand game Darnell was playin'. He was the mouth-piece between me an'
Bambridge. But all the time he was hatchin' a deal on his own hook. An'
this one was to make a raid on Blodgett's range without lettin' Bambridge
in on it. Joe Tanner never was no smart fellar, an' shore he was always
greedy. So he double-crossed us, too. Wal, it was Sam hyar who put me
wise. An' after figgerin' some an' snoopin' around I seen the deal. Funny
I didn't shoot Darnell. But I jest held him up. Then he swore the big
roll he had was fer you from Bambridge. I reckoned thet was the
truth...Wal, a day or so after they druv the lower end of the brakes an'
got some odd thousand head of Diamond stock up on the open range below
Tanner's. I was hoppin' mad when I found out, but neither Darnell or Joe
came back to Tanner's. Sam's sweet on the sawmill man's daughter, an'
thet's how he come to be out of what followed. He told me, an' also thet
Darnell, Joe, Lang, an' some riders he didn't know were comin' up to get
another whack at the Diamond cattle. Then I was a-rarin' to get at them.
I seen it all too late. Bambridge, by playin' on my hopes, had got me in
on his deals. He was aimin' fer a big stake--then to duck out of Arizona.
Now Darnell carried his messages to an' fro, an' he seein' a chanct
himself, double-crossed Bambridge an', as I said, persuaded Joe Tanner to
throw in with him."

Malloy refilled his pipe and called for Madden to fetch him a light.
After puffing thoughtfully, his cramped, wrinkled brow expressive of
much, he went on:

"I took their trail with Sam. Night before last, jest before sundown we
come damn near gettin' run down by a stampede of cattle. We rustled to
thet trapper's cabin, an', by Gawd! we hadn't hardly hid our horses an'
slipped in there when hyar come Joe, Lang, Darnell, an' his seedy-lookin'
outfit. Some of them had sense enough to ride on. But both Darnell an'
Tanner had been shot an' found ridin' hard. I never seen a madder man
than Tanner, nor a scareder one than Darnell. We'd jest started to have
hell there--with me readin' it to them, when we found out who an' what
was chasin' them...No less than the Diamond outfit, Jed, led by Slinger
Dunn an' thet Prentiss cowpuncher--Dog-gone, I'd always wanted to run
ag'in' him!...Wal, there they had us, an' you can bet we didn't sleep
much thet night. When daylight come I took a look out, an' was surprised
when the bullets began to fly. Them darned punchers all had rifles! An'
there we was, with only our guns, no shells to spare, little grub, an' no
water at all. We was stuck, an' you bet I told them.

"It wasn't long after thet when I smelled smoke," resumed Malloy, after a
pause. "Thet damned redskin Dunn had set fire to the cabin roof. It was
an old roof of shacks an' brush, an' shore dry. Burn? You should have
heerd it! We didn't have a hell of a lot of time. Fire began to drop on
us. Lookin' out, I seen thet the cowboys had bunched over at the edge of
the woods, jest out of gunshot. I seen also thet the smoke from the cabin
was blowin' low an' gettin' thicker. 'Men,' I says, 'we've got one chanct
an' a slim one. Take it or leave it. I'm gonna run out under cover of
thet smoke, an' make a break fer cover. Anyway, it's better to be shot
than burn up or hang. Take your choice. But whoever's comin' with me
start when I yell.'"

Malloy took another long pull at his pipe, and his wonderful eyes,
flaring with lightning, swept down over the wild brakes and along the
wandering grey wall of rock.

"I waited till a thick lot of smoke rolled off the roof," went on Malloy,
"an' then I yelled, 'Let 'er rip!' An' I run fer it, a gun in each hand.
To do 'em credit, every last man in the cabin charged with me. But what'n
hell could they do?...Wal, I got a bullet in the laig fust thing, an' I
went down. But I got up an' run as best I could. You'd thought an army
had busted loose--there was so much shootin'. An' bullets--say, they was
like bees! But we had the smoke with us, or not one man jack of us would
have escaped. Shore I was shootin', but bein' crippled an' on the run, I
was shootin' pore. I nailed one of them punchers, though, an' I seen
another one fall. Thet one was daid before he hit the ground. But someone
else allowed fer him...I got to the timber an' fell in the brush, where
you bet I laid low. I reckoned my laig was broke. But I wasn't even bad
shot, an' when I got it tied up I felt better. The shootin' an' yellin'
soon ended. I peeped through the brush...an' what do you reckon I seen?"

"Some rustler swingin'." returned Stone, hazarding a guess.

"Nope. It was thet caird sharp, Darnell. But when I seen him fust they
hadn't swung him up. I could hear him beggin'. But thet Diamond bunch was
shore silent an' swift. They jerked him clear, till he kicked above
their haids. I seen his tongue stick out...then his face go black...An'
next went up Lang an' Joe Tanner. They had their little kick...I watched,
but seen no more rustlers swing. But shore Prentiss an' Dunn would have
nailed some of them on the run. I crawled away farther an' hid under a
spruce thet had branches low on the ground. I lay there all day, till I
was shore the cowpunchers had rid away. Then I went into the spruces
where me an' Blacky had hid our horses. His was gone, but mine was there.
I sneaked him off into the woods, an' worked round to the trail. All
night! This mawnin' I run into Blacky, who'd got away without a scratch.
An' Sam, who hadn't been in the cabin, seen us from his hidin'-place,
an' whistled...An' wal, hyar we air."

"Croak, you might have reckoned on some such mess as thet," said Stone
gravely.

"Shore I might, but I didn't. Jed, I've had too damn much money lately.
Thet gambler het up my blood. I'm sorriest most thet I didn't plug him.
But it was a hell of a lot of satisfaction to see him kick."

"No wonder. I'd like to have been there...So the Hash-Knife is
done!--Croak, what do you aim at now?"

"Lay low an' wait," replied the gunman. "We shore can find men to build
up the outfit again."

"Never--if young Traft got killed in thet fight," retorted Stone,
vehemently. "Old Jim would rake the Tonto with guns an' ropes."

"Course I don't know who got shot, outside the two cowboys I see drop.
The one I shot wasn't young Traft, an' neither was the other. An' they
wasn't Slinger Dunn or Prentiss, either...Boss, have you seen Sonora?"

"No. He hasn't been in fer days," replied Stone.

Malloy held his pipe far away from him and sniffed the air.

"Damn it, am I loony, or do I smell blood?"

"I reckon you smell blood all right, Croak, old boy," returned Stone,
jocularly.

"How so? I'm shore washed clean." Suddenly, with his gaze on Stone,
narrowing and shrewd with conjecture, he felt with his foot the pack upon
which it had rested. "What the hell?"

"Bambridge!" he exclaimed, in cold and ringing speculation. "Boss, you
done for him?"

"I reckon, He throwed a gun on me, Croak," replied Stone, rising to go to
the wall, where he poked a finger in a bullet hole in one of the yellow
logs. "Look here."

"Ahuh...Wal, you saved me the trouble, mebbe...Shot yestiddy, I reckon.
What'd he have on him?"

"Ask Madden. He searched him."

"Hyar, Maddy, come out pronto," he yelled, and when the cook ran out
breathless and anxious, he went on. "This was your bad news, eh?"

"Nope, I didn't reckon thet bad. But he had only aboot five hundred on
him, an' some papers."

"Huh. Five hundred what?" demanded Malloy.

"Dollars--in gold-eagles."

"An' this two-bit cattle thief reckoned he'd bribe me with thet!" he
ejaculated, in disgust. "Wal, Maddy, give me one of them gold birds fer
luck, an' keep the rest...An' say, somebody'll have to plant this
stiff...Blacky, you an' Madden gotta dig a grave fer our departed guest.
Dig it right out hyar alongside the porch, an' put up a stone or
somethin', so when I see it I'll be reminded of what a foolish galoot I
am."

"Reckon you'd better search him again, Madden," added Stone. "Bambridge
was the kind of hombre who'd sew bills up inside his clothes."

The two outlaws, enthusiastic in obedience, lost no time complying. Stone
turned away from the gruesome sight. But Malloy watched with a sardonic
grin.

"Jed, I don't notice thet you've gone back any on the draw," he remarked.
"You shore hit him plumb centre...An', wal, I guess I gotta take it as
friendly act on your part, though I seen red fust off."

That day and the night passed. Stone grew more thoughtful. It did not
surprise him to see Sam Tanner saddle a horse and ride away while Malloy
lay asleep. These two men would never have gotten along.

Stone walked under the wall, and found his way into the hidden recesses
of a wide fissure which opened out into a canyon, chocked with green
thicket and splintered sections of cliff, where silence and peace
reigned. He could not stay longer at the cabin. Any hour that wild
Diamond outfit might ride up there. Stone realised that Malloy expected
it and certainly would not remain. Tanner had taken no chances.

Pecos would be waiting for him up at the headwaters of the Little
Colorado. Stone decided that the sooner he started the better for him.
There was a shadow over the yellow cabin built by Malloy, and more than
that cast by the bulk of the looming wall. Besides he hardly trusted
himself, so long as he remained in propinquity to the remnant of the
Hash-Knife.

Upon Stone's return to the cabin, at sunset, he found it deserted. Malloy
and his two comrades had departed in a hurry, leaving the interior of the
cabin in a state of confusion. He felt no surprise. It had happened
before. Still, there might have been good reason for such a departure.
Sonora might have returned or anything could have happened. Hastily
packing some food supplies and a blanket, Stone made his way under cover
of the wall to the corral, His horse was among the several horses left.
In a few moments Stone rode down the slope into the darkening forest.



CHAPTER SEVENTEEN

Three mornings later, in the first rosy flush of sunrise, when the black
squirrels were chattering and the blue jays screeching, Jed Stone struck
into a blazed trail new to him and which led to a newly graded road. This
he concluded was the road lately cut down into Yellow Jacket.

Up out of the canyon country now, on the level of the slowly rising
plateau, where forest of pine began to be sprinkled with open patches of
desert of cedar and pinon and sage, he relaxed something of vigilance
and made much faster time. Because of this he discovered, presently, that
he had ridden some distance over fresh horses' tracks before he had
observed them.

"That's queer," he soliloquised, halting. "They shore weren't in the road
back there a ways."

Riders had come along here that very morning, and they had certainly cut
off into the woods somewhere between this point and back where Stone had
noticed the clean untracked road.

The fact was disturbing, but after he had reflected a moment he made sure
that he would have heard and seen them long before they could have
discovered him. For he had been alone, and though relaxed somewhat from
strain he still exercised keen eyes and ears. They had turned off not to
avoid him, but for reasons of their own.

Stone spurred on and rode at a brisk canter for a while, anxious to get
to the cottonwood country, where again he could take to the deep forest.
But when he came to the junction of the new road with the old one he was
halted by plain evidences of a hold-up. A vehicle of some sort had come
along here headed south and had gone no farther, along either road. Stone
found a canvas bag, open and rifled of its contents, and thrown aside.
The ground about had been so cut up with hoofs that he could read but
little from the tracks. But soon he ascertained that the wheel tracks
turned back the way they had come.

"Wal, now, jest what come off heah?" he muttered. He was accustomed to
read the signs of the open. These might have meant little, and again they
might have meant a great deal. Stone sensed the latter, and he searched
the roadside until he found along the wheel tracks a bloody glove that
had fallen into the weeds.

"Ahuh. I smelled it--as Croak would say," declared Stone. "I'm jest
curious now to catch up with whatever had these wheels."

And in an hour or less he sighted a buckboard with one occupant driving
slowly north. Stone kept on. He would have a look at that driver and his
vehicle. A strong instinct prompted this, not all curiosity. He did not
need to come to close quarters with the driver. This individual wore no
hat; he had grey hair; he sagged in his seat, now his head hunched
between square shoulders and again with it lifted doggedly. Stone, after
the manner of riders of his kind, like hounds on scent, caught the colour
of blood on stones along the roadside. Then he spurred his horse into a
run.

Before he caught up with the buckboard it stopped, and the man turned,
evidently having heard the thudding hoofs behind. As Stone flashed up, to
haul his horse to a sliding halt, he caught sight of the dark face of a
Mexican lying on the floor behind the back seat. Stone had seen too many
dead men not to know this was one.

"Hey, old-timer--" Then he experienced a violent heart-stabbing start. He
was staring into the hard convulsed visage of a man he had not seen for
twenty years, yet whom he instantly recognised. A wrench tore Stone.
"Dog-gone-me if it ain't Jim!"

"Howdy, Jed!" replied the rancher, grimly. "An' what do you want?"

"Me!--Hell, nothin', except to ask what's happened? I run across your
tracks a ways back. Looked like a hold-up to me. An' I knew it when I
found this glove."

Stone pulled out the stained glove, which he had tucked under the pommel
of his saddle.

"Belonged to my driver, Pedro, lyin' there," said Traft, nodding at the
dead man. "But, shore, you know what come off."

"I don't. I know nothin'. I've been three days ridin' out of the brakes.
I jest run across you."

"Jed Stone, can you expect me to believe thet?" queried Traft,
incredulously.

"Reckon I expect it, Jim, 'cause I swear it's true," replied Stone, and
gazed straight into the steel-blue eyes bent so piercingly and
accusingly, and yet so strangely, upon him. That look bridged the long
cruel years back to the dim cowboy days.

"You don't know I've been held up an' robbed by Croak Malloy?" demanded
Traft, derisively.

"By God!...You have?...No, Jim, I didn't know."

"Nor thet he killed my driver?"

"I didn't know, Jim," repeated Stone, now with terrible earnestness to be
believed by this old rancher.

"Jed, I reckon I don't see any reason for you lyin' to me. Many years ago
you lied to me--an' thet lie ruined you an' saved me. But don't lie now."

"Jim, I'm not lyin'. I swear to God!...I'd quit the Hash-Knife. I left
our hole down in the brakes three days ago. My outfit's done. Malloy
broke it up. I'm leavin' Arizona for ever--an' this life I've led."

After a protracted study of Stone's face the rancher burst out: "My Gawd!
Jed, I'm glad. An' it's shore a queer meetin' for me an' you...But
listen. I was goin' down to Yellow Jacket to surprise my nephew Jim. I
had his sweetheart, Molly Dunn with me, an' his sister, Gloriana. We
slept last night at Miller's sheep-ranch, I reckon some fifteen miles up
the road. An' at the turn-off down there we got held up by three men. I
didn't know Malloy till one of his pardners called him Croak...Wal, when
Pedro drove on, at my order, Malloy rode up an' shot him. An' you bet
he'd have done fer me but fer an idea he got. Anyway, they robbed me an'
yanked the girls out of the buckboard. They had to hawg-tie Molly. She
shore fought. Malloy says, 'Traft, I'll give you three days to come to
Tobe's Well with ten thousand dollars. Put the money in the loft of the
cabin, next the chimney. We'll see you come, or whoever you send. An'
these girls will be set free. Mebbe a little wuss fer love-makin'!'...The
little ruffian said jest thet, an' grinned aboot it. I agreed. An' he let
me go."

"Jim, if I know Malloy he let you off easy," declared Stone, sharply, and
he reined his horse over close to the buckboard. "I struck their tracks
down by the new road. An' I know aboot where they cut off into the
woods...Jim, I'll trail Malloy, an' go round an' haid him off, or come up
on him at Tobe's Well. Mebbe I better make a short cut an' beat him
there...But I'll come up on him before dark. An' I'll get the girls."

"Jed Stone, are you aimin' fer thet ten thousand?" demanded Traft.

"I don't want a dollar. I'll do this because, wal, because I liked young
Jim, an' because I'd starve before I'd do you another dirty deal. At thet
Malloy an' Bambridge rung me into the only one. An' I killed Bambridge
fer doin' it."

"You killed Bambridge?" ejaculated the rancher.

"I shore did. An' Croak told me he'd seen thet gambler Darnell kickin' at
the end of a rope. But, Jim, you'll hear all thet pronto. I'll have to
rustle...One thing more. Malloy may kill me. I reckon I can outfigger
him, but to be on the safe side you'd better send a trusty rider with
thet money, an' after you do, make a bee-line for Yellow Jacket. For I'll
fetch the girls there."

"Jed Stone, by--heaven!...wait!" faltered the old cattleman.

But Stone had spurred away, to call over his shoulder, "So long, Jim--old
pard!"

Like the wind Stone raced back down the road, and as soon as he was sure
of direction he cut across the cedared desert and into the woods, where
gallop and trot soon brought him upon Malloy's tracks. He followed them,
and marvelled in mind at the inscrutability of chance, at the
inevitableness of life--at this meeting with Jim. After all, he was not
to ride away from the brakes without the blood of Croak Malloy on his
hands. How his heart leaped at the just cause! For as surely as his keen
eyes were finding the tracks over moss and pine needles, he realised he
would kill Malloy. Very likely all three of the rustlers! He must come up
to them before night, otherwise the young women would be subjected to
abuse and worse. Malloy had always made much of his few opportunities to
degrade women. Probably owing to his misshapen body and repulsive face
all women, even the slatterns of the town, had wanted none of his
acquaintance, which had made the little gunman a woman-hater.

The hours of the day were as moments. Forest and ravine, pine and spruce,
rock and log, all looked alike to Stone. Yet he recognised familiar
country when he rode into it. By mid-afternoon he had approached the
vicinity of Tobe's Well, a wonderful natural hollow in the high
escarpment overlooking the Cibeque. Stone left the trail he was hounding,
and going around came up on the rim from the south. Horses rolling below
in the sandy patches! Smoke curling from the stone chimney of the log
cabin! Saddles and packs under the great silver spruce!

Jed Stone led his horse around the rim and down a dim seldom-trodden
trail to the opening into the circular gorge. And never in all his twenty
years of hard, wild life had he been more Jed Stone.

No one hailed him as he strode along the mossy bank of the brook, under
the stately pines, and on toward the cabin. The lonely isolation of the
place invited carelessness. But Stone muttered: "They must be powerful
keen on what's inside. Reckon I didn't get here too soon."

Dropping the bridle reins, he strode on to the open door. It was a big
bright cabin, open on the lee side. And as he glanced in he heard a
girl's low cry, deep, broken with emotion. He saw a dark little girl with
gold-brown hair, all tossed and tangled, lying bound half upright against
a pile of packs. That was Molly Dunn. He did not need to look twice. His
eyes swept on.

Madden was on his knees, his hands white with flour, but on the moment he
appeared riveted. Reeves stood back, his face set toward Malloy, who
manifestly had just torn the blouse off a white-faced, white-shouldered
girl, shrinking before him.

The moment had been made for Jed Stone. He recognised it, and saw, as if
by magic, how far in the past it had its incipiency and now had reached
fulfilment. He gloried in it. What debts he would pay here!

He stepped inside to call out, harshly, "What the hell's goin' on?"

It was the first occasion on which he had ever seen Malloy surprised, but
perhaps the thousandth when he had seen him angry. Stone felt his sudden
presence had been decidedly inopportune for his erstwhile partner and his
accomplices.

"Aw, it's the boss!" gasped Madden, in explosion of breath that suggested
relief.

"Who's been chasin' you?" burst out Malloy, and with a gesture of
impatience he flung down the torn blouse.

"Jed Stone!" screamed Molly Dunn, and if ever a voice thrilled Stone this
one did then. She had recognised him. Even on the moment he remembered
the times he had patted Molly's curly head when she was a mere tot, had
bought her candy at the store in West Fork, had often lifted her upon his
horse, and in later years, when she was grown into a pretty girl, he had
walked with her on occasions when he rode to and fro from the Cibeque to
the Tonto.

"Wal, I reckon ten thousand devils might be chasin' me, fer all you'd
care, Croak," replied Stone. "I jest happened in on you here."

"Damn queer, an' I call it tough. You're wuss'n an old woman," complained
Malloy.

"Who're these girls an' what're you doin' with them?"

"Jed we got into another brush down in the brakes," replied Malloy. "Damn
if it wasn't full of cowpunchers. But we give them the slip. An' comin'
out we run plumb into old Jim Traft an' these gurls. It gave me a great
idee. An 'hyar air the gurls while old Jim is raisin' the dust back to
Flag."

"My Gawd!--Not old Jim Traft--the rancher?" burst out Stone, loudly, in
pretended consternation.

"Shore. I said old Jim, didn't I?"

"An' these girls are friends or kin of his?"

"Shore. I reckon you'd know Molly Dunn if you'd look. She knowed you all
right. The other is young Jim Traft's sister."

"An' you aim to make money out of them?"

"I shore do."

"An' make game of them while the money's comin'?" demanded Stone,
harshly.

"Wal, thet's none of your bizness, Jed," rejoined Malloy, testily. Habit
was strong upon him. This interruption had upset him and he had scarcely
adapted himself to it.

But Stone, acting his part, intense and strong, saw already that Malloy's
mind had not grasped the situation.

"Man, are you crazy?" shouted Stone. "Jim Traft will have a hundred
cowboys ridin' on your trail. You couldn't hit it--with nine horses.
They'll catch you--they'll hang you."

"Hang nothin'. Jed, you're the one who's crazy. What's got into you
lately?" replied Malloy, in plaintive amaze and disgust. "You're gettin'
old and you've lost your nerve."

"Croak, you've done fer the Hash-Knife, an' now this deal will set the
whole country ablaze."

Malloy stared his amaze. Stone, seizing the instant, strode to and fro in
apparent despair, and wringing his hands, he wheeled away. But when he
turned, swift as light, he held a gun spouting red. The little gunman
died on his feet, without a movement, even of that terribly sensitive
right hand. But he fell face down, showing where the bullet had blown off
the back of his head.

Madden, with a bawling curse, swept one of his flour-covered hands for
his gun. Too late, for Stone's second shot knocked him over as if it had
been a club.

Reeves leaped for the door, just escaping the bullet Stone fired after
him. And he was visible running madly in the direction of the horses.
Stone let him go. Then he surveyed the cabin. A glance sufficed for
Madden and Malloy, but it was a dark and terrible one, of reckoning, of
retribution.

The girl Malloy had half stripped had slipped to the floor in a faint,
her white arms spread. Then on the instant Molly Dunn's eyes opened,
black and dilated with terror.

"How do, Molly!" said Stone, as he bent over her to slash the thongs of
buckskin round her boots. He had to roll her over to free her hands. "I
reckon I got her none too soon, but not too late, either."

"Oh, Jed--you've come--to save us?" cried Molly.

"Shore. An' as I said I hope not--too late."

"We're all right, Jed. But, oh, I was scared. Thet croakin' devil!...Is
he daid?"

"Malloy has croaked his last, Molly," went on Stone. "I happened to run
across old Jim out on the road. Thet's how I got on your trail. Brace up,
now, Molly. Why, this little affair shouldn't faze Molly Dunn of the
Cibeque."

"I knowed--knew you at first sight, Jed. An' oh, my heart leaped!...Jed
thank God you come in time. I was aboot ready to die. I'd fought Malloy
till he hawg-tied me...Oh, how can I ever thank you enough? How will Jim
ever do it?"

"Wal, you needn't try to thank me, Molly," he replied. "Now let's
see...It's 'most dark already. We'd better camp here tonight. An'
tomorrow we'll start for Yellow Jacket...Reckon I'd better pull these
disagreeable-lookin' hombres outside."

Inside the cabin Stone saw that Molly had somehow gotten the torn blouse
on the unconscious girl, and was now trying to bring her to.

"Let nature take its course, Molly," he advised. "She'll come to
presently of her own accord, an' mebbe the shock of her will be
less...Lord! what a pretty girl! I never seen her like...An' she's young
Jim's sister?"

"Yes. An' isn't she just lovely?"

"Here, we'll lift her up on this bed of spruce. Somebody cut it nice an'
fresh. You can both sleep there tonight."

"Glory--you called her?"

"Shore. But her name's Gloriana."

"An' she's a city girl from the East?"

"Yes. An', Jed, she's come to live out West always."

"Fine, if you can keep her. Proudlookin' lass! Won't this little
adventure sicken her on the West?"

"It'll be the best thing that ever happened to her," avowed Molly, with
bright eyes. "Jed, she shore was aboot the proudest girl I ever met. An'
Jim's sister. His family, really! Gosh! it was hard on me. I made a mess
of things. Jed, I went back on Jim because I thought I wasn't good enough
for him--for his aristocratic family. But he kidnapped me--thank the good
Lord. I reckon I was jealous, too."

"Small wonder, Molly. It was tough on you--to stack up against these
Trafts, you just fresh from the Cibeque. But you're good enough fer
anybody, Molly Dunn. I shore hope it'll come out all right."

"Oh, it will, Jed," replied Molly, hopefully. "Glory has a heart of gold.
I love her--an' indeed I believe she's comin' to love me. But she can't
savvy me. Heah I've had only two years schoolin', an' lived all my life
in a log cabin no better'n this, almost. Never had any clothes or
nothin'. An' she has had everythin'. Uncle Jim says the West will win her
an' thet she an' I will get along an' be sisters soon as Glory is broke
in. He says she must get up against the real old West--you know, an' thet
will strike the balance. I don't savvy jest what Uncle Jim means, but I
believe him."

"Molly, I reckon I savvy what Uncle Jim is drivin' at," replied Stone,
smiling thoughtfully at the earnest girl. "The real old West means hard
knocks, like this one she's gettin', cowboys an' cattle, work when you
want to drop, an' no sleep when you're dyin' fer it. Cold an' wet an'
dust an' wind! To be starved! To be scared stiff!...A hundred things thet
are nothin' at all to you, Molly Dunn, are what this city girl needs."

"Jed, thet's exactly what Uncle says...I'm to marry Jim soon," she went
on, with a blush. "They all wanted it this spring, but I coaxed off till
fall."

"Ahuh. I reckon you love him heaps, Molly?"

"Oh!--I'm not really Molly Dunn any more. I've lost myself. I'm happy,
though, Jed. I'm goin' to school. An' if only Glory could see me as I see
her!"

"Wal, I'll help her see you true, Molly," returned Stone, patting her
hand. "Now, I'd better go outside while you fetch her to. Sight of the
desperado who came a-rarin' in here, swearin' an' shootin', mightn't be
good."

"Jed, she was simply crazy aboot desperadoes," said Molly, "An' I
honestly believe she was tickled when Malloy carried us off. Leastways,
she was till he got to pawin' her."

"Dog-gone! Thet's good...Now, Molly, don't you say one word aboot me till
I think it over. I'll go outside an' see to my horse. An' when she's all
right, you come out to tell me. Mebbe by then I'll have a plan."

"Jed Stone, never in my life--an' I've always know you--did I ever
think of you as a rustler, a killer, a bad man. An' now I know you're not
really."

"Thanks, Molly; thet'll be sweet to remember," he replied. "Fetch her to,
now, an' say nothin'."

Stone went outside, unsaddled his horse and turned him loose, then walked
to and fro, in his characteristic way when deep in thought. Presently
Molly came running to him. What pleasure that afforded the outlaw whose
life had been lived apart from the influence of women!

"She's come to, Jed. An' she's not so knocked out as I reckoned she'd
be," said the girl, happily. "I darn near exploded keepin' our
secret--thet we're safe with you an' will start in the mawnin' fer Yellow
Jacket."

"Wal now, Molly Dunn, you stick to me," rejoined Stone, eagerly. "We'll
let on I'm wuss than Croak--thet I jest killed them fellars an drove the
third off so I could have you girls to myself. It's a good three-day ride
to Yellow Jacket, fer you, anyhow. Thet gives us time to cure Miss
Gloriana of all her bringin'-up. I'll be real shore enough desperado--up
to a certain point. Savvy, Molly?"

"Oh, Jed, if I only dared do it!" exclaimed Molly, pale with excitement.
How her dark eyes glowed! "But she'll suffer. An'--an' I love her so!"

"Shore. All the same, if she's got the real stuff in her thet's the way
to fetch it out. It's the only way, Molly, to strike thet balance between
you an' her which your Uncle meant. If you've got the nerve, girl, an' do
your part, you'll never regret it."

"Jed, you don't mean never to tell Glory you're good instead of bad. I
couldn't agree to thet."

"Wal of course, she's bound to find out sometime thet I'm not so bad,
after all. But I'd advise you to put Uncle Jim wise an' keep the secret
for a while. Molly, I'll be disappointed in you if you fall down on this
chance. I'll bet you young Jim would jump at it."

"He would--he would," panted Molly. "Jed, Heaven forgive me--I'll do it.
I'll trust you an' do my part."

"Thet's like a girl of the Cibeque," replied Jed, heartily. "Go back now,
an' tell her you both have fallen out of the fryin'-pan into the fire."



CHAPTER EIGHTEEN

Stone entered the cabin, as once he had seen the villain in a melodrama.
The Traft girl was sitting up, with Molly fluttering around her. He
sustained a shock--like wind rushing back through his veins to his heart.
It was as if he had not before seen this girl. In all his life such eyes
had never before met his. They were large, dark violet, strained with an
expression which might have been horror or terror, or fascination. How
wondrously lovely. Stone doubted that he could play his part before their
gaze.

"Wal, what'd this Dunn kid tell you?" he demanded, with a fierce glare.

"Oh--sir--she said you--you were Jed Stone, the desperado," faltered the
girl, in haste. "That we'd fallen out of the frying-pan into the
fire--that you killed those men so you could have us all--to yourself."

"Correct. An' now what do you think?" queried Stone, studying the girl.
She was frightened, and still under the influence of shock, but she was
no fool.

"Think? About--what?"

"Why, your new owner, of course. Reckon I always was jealous of Croak
Malloy--of his gun-play an' his way with wimmen."

"Mister Stone, when you came in this cabin--when that little beast was
tearing my clothes off--I knew you were going to save me from him."

"Wal, you're the smart girl," he replied, and almost wavered before those
searching, imploring eyes. "Shore I was." Then he reached down with a
slow hand and clutched the front of her blouse and jerked her to her
feet. Holding her to the light, he bent his face closer to her. "You're a
beautiful thing, but are you good?"

"Good?...I think so--I hope so."

"Wal, you gotta know if I ask you. Are you a good girl?"

"Yes, sir, if I understand you."

"Wal, thet's fine. I've shore been hungry fer one of your kind. Molly
Dunn there, she's a Western kid, an' a little wildcat thet's not afraid
of desperadoes. She comes of the raw West, same as me. She'll furnish
game fer me. But you're different. You belong to the class that made me
an outlaw. An' I'm gonna take twenty years of shame an' sufferin' out on
you...Make you slave for me!...Make you love me! Beat you! Drag you
down."

She sagged under his grasp, without which she would have fallen. Her face
could not have been any whiter. "I--I am at your mercy...But, for God's
sake if you had the manhood to kill those brutes--can't you have enough
to spare us?"

"If you're gonner flop over an' faint every time I grab you or speak to
you this'll be a picnic fer me," he said, disgustedly. "Where's your
Traft nerve? Thet brother of yours, young Jim, has shore got nerve. He
braced me an' my whole outfit. Come right to us, an' without a gun. I
shore liked him. Thet was the day he knocked the stuffin's out of Croak
Malloy...No, Gloriana, you ain't no real Traft."

That stung red into her marble cheeks and a blaze to her wonderful eyes.

"I haven't had half a chance," she flashed, as much to herself as to him.

"You'd never make a go of the West, even if you hadn't had the bad luck
to run into Jed Stone," he went on. "You're too stuck up. You think
you're too good fer plain Western folks, like Molly there, an' her
brother, an' me, an' Curly Prentiss. An' you really ain't good enough.
Because here it's what you can do thet counts. Wal, I'll bet you cain't
do much. An' I'm shore gonna see. Come hyar!"

He dragged her across the floor to the fireplace, where Madden had opened
packs and spread utensils and supplies.

"Get down on your knees, you white-faced Easterner," he ordered, forcing
her down. "Bake biscuits fer me. If they ain't good I'll beat you. An'
fry meat an' boil coffee. Savvy."

With trembling hands she rolled up her sleeves and began to knead the
flour Madden had left in the pan. Stone observed that she was not so
helpless and useless as he had supposed. Then he turned to Molly.

"Wal, my dusky lass, you can amoose me while Gloriana does the
housework."

"I shore won't. Stay away from me!" shouted Molly, bristling like a
porcupine. When Stone attempted to lay hold of her person she eluded him,
and catching up a pan she flung it with unerring aim. Stone dodged, but
it took him on the back of the head with a great clang, and then banged
to the floor.

"You'll pay fer thet, you darned little hussy," he roared, and made at
her.

Then followed a wild chase around the cabin, that to an observer who was
not obsessed with fear, as was Gloriana, would have been screamingly
funny. As an actor Jed was genuine, but he was as heavy on his feet as an
ox, and he had to face the brunt of missiles Molly threw, that never
failed to connect with some part of his anatomy. When she hit him on the
knee with a heavy fruit-can he let out a bawl of honest protest. Molly
finally ran behind the half-partition which projected out from the wall,
and here allowed Jed to catch her. The partition was constructed of
brush. He tore out a long bough and cracked the wall with it.

"Take thet--you darned--little Apache squaw," he panted, and he whacked
away with his switch. Then he bent over Molly, who was convulsed on the
pine-needle floor, and whispered in her ear, "Yell--scream!"

Whereupon Molly obeyed! "Ah...Oh!...Ouu!"

Stone paused for effectiveness, while he peeped through the screen.
Gloriana knelt erect, her breast heaving, her eyes wildly magnificent.
They were searching round for a weapon, Jed concluded.

"Now--Molly Dunn--mebbe thet'll learn you not to monkey with Jed
Stone...Come hyar, an' kiss me."

He had to shake her to keep her remembering her part. Stone made smacking
sounds with his lips, capital imitations of lusty kisses.

"Oh--you crazy desperado!" burst out Molly, choking. "Jim Traft--will
kill you--for this!"

"Haw haw! Thet's funny...Now, you be good fer a minnit." Whereupon he
picked her up and carried her, along with the wicked whip, out to the
couch, where he dropped her like a sack of potatoes. Molly's face was a
spectacle. It was wet and working. She hid it on the green spruce boughs
and then she kicked like a furious colt. Her smothered imprecations
sounded like: "Brute! Beast! Coyote! Skunk!"

Stone had made a discovery. His keen sight caught Gloriana concealing the
butcher knife, clutched in her hand and half-hidden in the folds of her
dress. She, too, was a spectacle to behold, but beautiful and marvellous
to him--her spirit so much greater than her strength.

"Say, what're you goin' to do with thet knife?" demanded Stone.

"You're no desperado! You're a dog," she cried. "If you lay hand on Molly
again I--I'll kill you."

Here indeed was a quick answer to the primitive instincts Stone and Molly
had wished to rouse in the Eastern girl. Indeed, Stone thought she might
develop too fast and spoil the game. Most assuredly she had to be
intimidated. "You'd murder me--you white-faced panther?" he shouted,
ferociously. "Drop thet knife!" And whipping out his gun he fired,
apparently pointblank at her; but he knew the bullet would hit the bucket
of water. The crash in the encompassing cabin walls was loud. Gloriana
not only dropped the knife--she dropped herself. However, she did not
quite faint. Stone lifted her up, with feelings vastly different from
what he pretended, and then he made a show of collecting everything
around which she might have used as a weapon.

"Get back to work," he ordered.

She weakly brushed back her amber hair, leaving a white blot of flour on
it and her forehead, and then went at the biscuit dough again.

"Say, darlin', did you wash them slim little paws of yourn?" asked Stone,
suddenly.

"No. I--I never thought to," she faltered.

"Wal, you wash them. There's the washpan...What're you tryin' to do--poison
me with dirty hands? I'll have you know, Gloriana Traft, thet I'm
a clean desperado, an' any woman who cooks fer me has gotta be spick an'
span."

Then Stone searched among the packs to find a short-handled shovel, with
which he proposed to dig Croak Malloy's grave. The thing was monstrously
impelling. Jed Stone digging Croak Malloy's grave! Arizona would learn
that some day, and the range-riders would marvel as they talked about the
campfires, adding bit by bit to the story of the doom of the Hash-Knife.

The job done, he placed a huge rock at the foot of the grave, with the
prophetic remark: "Shore some wag of a cowpuncher will plant a
haidpiece."

Whereupon Jed's active mind reverted to the issue in the cabin, and on
the way back he picked up a good-size stone which he concealed under his
coat. The light of blazing pine cones revealed the two girls working
frantically to get supper for him. He caught the tail end of Molly's
conversation: "an' no use lyin', Glory--I'm as scared as you."

"O Heaven! how false men are!" sighed Glory. "When this desperado came in
I had a wild thought he was a hero."

"Hey, don't talk aboot me," put in Stone. "I'm a sensitive man."

Silence ensued then. The girls did not look up. And Stone, profiting by
this, threw some sacks over the blood pools on the hard-packed clay
floor. Also he surreptitiously laid the stone on the box seat where he
intended to sit at the rickety old rough-hewn table. This he cleared by
piling Malloy's trappings on the ground, and covering these with the
cleanest piece of canvas he could find. Then he sat down to watch and
wait. He realised he had fallen upon the most delicious situation of his
life--if he had ever had one before--and he wanted to live every second
of it to the full. Finally the girls put the supper on the table.

"Thet's right, wait on me, Gloriana," he said. "An' you, Molly, set down
an' eat...Gimme one of them turrible-lookin' biscuits...Ou! Hot!"

He contrived to drop the biscuit and at the same instant push the heavy
rock off the box seat. It fell with a solid thump. Gloriana actually
jumped. Her eyes opened wide.

"Golly! Did you heah thet biscuit hit?" ejaculated Stone, as if
dumbfounded.

"I heahed somethin' heavy," corroborated Molly, serious-faced, but her
sweet red lips slightly twitched.

"Say, gurl, air you aimin' to poison me?" demanded Stone, suspiciously.
"What'n hell did you put in thet biscuit?"

Gloriana stammered something, and then walking round the table she espied
the rock, which, unfortunately, had fallen upon the biscuit.

"It was a rock," she said, slowly.

"Wal, dog-gone! So it was. Must have been on the box. I shore didn't see
it...I offer my humble apologies, Miss Traft."

No doubt Gloriana's mind was so steeped in fright that it could not
function normally, yet she gazed with dubious tragic eyes at the
desperado.

"Wal," he drawled, when he could eat no more, as he transfixed Gloriana
with eyes he tried to make devouring, "if you can love as well as cook,
I'm shore a lucky desperado...Get out now and I'll wash up. No
sweethearts of mine ever had to do the dirty work round my camp."

While he was noisily banging pans, cups, and other utensils around his
trained ear caught Gloriana's whisper, "Now--let's run!"

"An' get lost in the woods--for bears to eat!" whispered Molly.

Stone dried the camp utensils and placed them on the shelf, after which
he washed his hands, in hot water.

"Put some wood on the fire," he said, filling his black pipe. "Pass me a
red coal on a chip...Thet's it, darlin'; you're shore learnin' fast."

"Spread some blankets on the bed there," he said, pointing to the pack he
had opened. While this order was being complied with he puffed his pipe,
and opened his big hands to the fire with an air of content. Molly's
reproachful glance might have been lost upon him. Jed reasoned it out
that the little Cibeque girl had lived too long among Western men to
trust him wholly. That gave Stone more thrills. He would fool Molly, too.
At length he got up to view the bed.

"Kinds narrow fer three to sleep comfortable," he said, laconically. "I
always wear my boots an' spurs to bed--in case I have to hurry to a
hoss--an' I kick when I have nightmare. But I reckon there's room fer
two. Now, Molly, you an' Gloriana draw lots to see who'll sleep fust
night with me."

"Jed Stone, I'll see you in hell before I'd do it," cried Molly,
passionately. "You'll have to tie me, hand an' foot."

"Wal, you needn't take my head off. I kinda lean to Glory, anyhow."

Gloriana gazed at him with eyes full of a sickening horror and desperate
defiance.

"You'll have to kill me--you monster!" she said, hoarsely.

"Wal, both buckin' on me, huh," replied Stone, as if resigned to the
nature of women. "All right, I don't want no tied gurl sleepin' with me,
an' shore no daid one. So I'll pass. You can sleep together, an' I'll be
a gentleman an' go outdoors."

Stone picked up one of the bed rolls, and carrying it out back through
the open side of the cabin he unrolled it in the gloom of the cliff and
stretched himself as if he never meant to move again. He could see the
flicker of the firelight on one wall of the cabin, but the girls were out
of his sight. He heard their low voices for what seemed a long time.



CHAPTER NINETEEN

Jed Stone awoke with the first pink streak of dawn flushing the sky. The
old sombre distrust of the new day had departed. He seemed young again.

Going to the door of the cabin, he called: "Hey, babes in the woods! Roll
out an' rustle."

He heard a gasp, and then a low moan, but he did not look in. He went out
to fetch the horses. There had been nine in the canyon the night before;
now he could see but six, including his own. One was a pretty pinto mare
which he selected for Gloriana, with a chuckle at the thought of how all
her life she would remember this ride. He drove four horses in, haltered
them, and chose the best saddles for the girls, the stirrups of which he
shortened to fit them. It tickled him to see the blue smoke curling up
from the cabin, and a little later his keen nostrils took note of the
fragrance of coffee.

Presently he repaired to the cabin.

"Mawnin', gurls," he bawled, stalking in.

Gloriana had been listlessly brushing her lustrous hair, while Molly
attended to the breakfast chores.

"Ha, makin' yourself look pretty," remarked Stone. "Wal, we can't
bamboozle the boss of the Hash-Knife. An' you ought to be
ashamed--lettin' Molly do all the work."

"I started the fire and made the biscuits," she retorted. Stone had
grasped before that she seemed peculiarly susceptible to criticism, and
decided he would work on her sensitiveness to the limit.

"Wal, you can't pack much of this outfit," observed Stone. "You gurls
pick out what belongs to you."

Molly designated two duffle-bags and one small grip. Stone carried them
outside. Then returning, he rolled some blankets. He remembered that he
had some hard bread and dried meat in his saddle-bags, which supply he
would add to without letting the girls know. His plan precluded an
insufficiency of food on this three-day ride down to Yellow Jacket. When
he had packed the horse Molly called from the cabin, "Come an' get it!"

"You come hyar yourself an' get some-thin'," he replied.

Molly came runnin', anxious and big-eyed. "What--Jed?"

"Pitch in now, an' show this Eastern gull what a Western lass is made of.
Savvy?"

"I reckon."

"I'm givin' you the chance, Molly. Don't fall down. Take everythin' as a
matter of course. Help her, shore, but give her a little dig now an'
then."

"Jed, you're a devil," returned Molly, slowly, and turned away.

The breakfast was even more tasteful than had been the supper the night
before. Stone ate with the appetite of an Indian, and the wisdom of a
range-rider who had to go far.

"Gulls, I've gotta hurry, so can't pack much grub," said. Stone, rising
to gather up a few utensils, some coffee and meat, and what biscuits had
been left.

Presently the girls appeared. Molly had taken the precaution to don a
riding-skirt and boots, but Gloriana wore the thin dress which Malloy had
torn considerably.

"Where's your hat?" asked Stone.

"It blew off, yesterday...I--I forgot to look in my bag--and change. If
you'll give me time--"

"Nope. Sorry, Gloriana. Didn't I tell you I was a hunted man? You'll have
to ride as you are. Strikes me the Lord made you wonderful to look at,
but left out any brains. You'll do fine in Arizona...Here, wear Croak's
sombrero...Haw haw! If your ma could see you now!"

She had to be helped up on the pinto, which promptly bucked her off upon
the soft sward. What injury she suffered was to her vanity. She threw off
the sombrero, but Stone jammed it back on her head.

"Can't you ride?" inquired Stone, gazing down upon her.

"Do you think I was born in a stable?" she asked, bitterly.

"Wal, it'd be a darn sight better if you was. An' far as thet is
concerned the Lord was born in a stall, so I've heerd. So it ain't no
disgrace...I'm curious to know why you ever come to Arizona?"

"I was a fool."

"Wal, get up an' try again. This little mare isn't bad. She was jest
playin'. But don't let her see you're afraid. An' don't kick her in the
ribs, like you did when you got up fust."

"I--I can't ride this way," she said, scarlet of face.

"Wal, you are a holy show, by golly!" observed Stone. "I never seen so
much of a pretty gurl. You shore wouldn't win no rodeo prizes fer
modesty."

"Molly, I can't go on," cried Gloriana, almost weeping. "My skirt's up
round my neck!"

"Glory, I don't see what else you can do. You'll have to ride," replied
Molly.

"Thet's talkin'. Glory, you'll get some idee of the difference between a
no-good tenderfoot from the East an' a healthy Western cowgurl...Now, you
follow me, an' keep up, or there'll be hell to pay."

The ease with which Molly mounted her horse, a wicked, black animal, was
not lost upon Gloriana, nor the way she controlled him.

"Molly, you better lead this pack-horse. I'll have to keep my eye on our
cultured lady-friend hyar," drawled Stone, and he started off. At the
gateway of the canyon, where a rough trail headed up toward the rim, he
turned to caution Gloriana, "Hang on to her mane."

When they reached the top he had satisfaction in the expression of that
young woman's face. Stone then struck out along the rim, and he did not
need to pick out a rough way. The trail was one seldom used, and then
only by riders who preferred to keep to the wilder going. It led through
thickets of scrub oak, manzanita and dwarf pine, with a generous
sprinkling of cactus. To drag Gloriana Traft through them was nothing
short of cruelty. Stone kept an eye on her, though he appeared never to
turn his head, never to hear her gasps and cries. Molly, who came last,
often extricated her from some tangle.

Stone, from long habit, was a silent and swift traveller, and did not
vary his custom now. But he had to stop more often to let the girls catch
up. The condition of Gloriana's dress--what was left of it--seemed
satisfactory to the outlaw. Before Gloriana Traft got through this ride
she would give all her possessions for a pair of blue jeans.

About the middle of the morning Jed came out on the high point of the
Diamond Mesa. And he halted. The girls came up, to gaze out and down.

"Oh-h!" cried Miss Traft, her voice broken, yet deep and rich with
feeling. She did not disappoint Stone here.

"The Tonto!" screamed Molly, suddenly beside herself. "Jed, why didn't
you tell me you were comin' heah?...Oh, Glory, look--look! It's my home."

"Home!" echoed Gloriana, incredulously.

"Yes, Home!...An', oh, how I love it! See thet thin line, with the white?
Thet's the Cibeque windin' away down through the valley. See the big
turn. Now look, Glory. There's a bare spot in the green. An' a grey dot
in the middle. Thet's my home. Thet's my cabin. Where I was born."

"I see. But I can hardly believe," replied Gloriana. "That tiny pin-point
in all the endless green?"

"Shore is, Glory. You're standin' on the high rim of the Diamond, a mile
above the valley. But it looks close. You should see from down there. All
my life I've looked up at this point. It was the Rim. But I was never
heah before...Oh, look, look, Glory, so you will never forget!"

The Eastern girl gazed silently, with eyes that seemed to reflect
something of the grandeur of the scene. Stone turned away from her, glad
in his heart that somehow she had satisfied him. Then he had a moment for
himself--to gaze once more and the last time over the Tonto.

"Molly, don't forget to show Gloriana some other places," said Stone,
with a laugh. "There's West Fork, a village I used to ride through an'
see you at Summer's store. An' buy you a stick of candy...Not for years
now...An' never again...There's Bear Flat an' Green Valley. An' Haverly's
Ranch, an' Gordon Canyon. An' see, far to the east, thet bare yellow
patch. Thet's Pleasant Valley, where they had the sheep an' cattle war
which ruined your dad, though he was only a sympathiser, Molly. I reckon
you never knew. Wal, it's true...Miss Traft, you're shore the furst
Eastern gurl ever to see the Tonto."

Though they wanted to linger, Stone ordered them on. Momentarily he had
forgotten his role of slave-driver. But Gloriana had been too engrossed
in her own sensations to notice his lapse.

When Stone crossed the drift fence, which along here had been cut by the
Hash-Knife, he halted to show the girls.

"Traft's drift fence. Gloriana, this is what the old man saddled on your
brother Jim. There's nine miles of fence down, which Jim an' his uncle
can thank Croak Malloy fer. But I will say the buildin' of this fence was
a big thing. Old Jim has vision. Shore I'm a cattle thief, an' the fence
didn't make no difference to me. I reckon it was a help to rustlers. But
Malloy hated fences...Wal, it'll be a comfort to Traft an' all honest
ranchers to learn he's dead."

"Jed Stone, you--you seem to be two men!" exclaimed Gloriana.

"Shore. I'm more'n thet. An' I reckon one of them is some kin to human.
But don't gamble on him, my lovely tenderfoot. He's got no say in my
make-up."

Molly Dunn lagged behind, most intensely interested in that drift fence,
the building of which had made her lover, young Traft, a marked man on
the range, and which had already caused a good deal of blood-spilling.
Stone had to halloa to her, and wait.

"What's ailin' you, gurl?" he queried, derisively. "Thet fence make you
lovesick fer Jim? Wal, I reckon you won't see him again very soon, if
ever...Get off an' straighten thet pack."

While Molly heaved and pulled to get the pack level on the pack-saddle
again, Stone rolled a cigarette and watched Gloriana. Her amaze at Molly
Dunn amused him.

"Wal, Glory, she used to pack grub an' grain from West Fork on a burro,
when both of them wasn't any bigger'n jack-rabbits."

"There's a lot I don't know," observed Gloriana, thoughtfully, as for the
hundredth time she tried to pull her torn skirt down to hide her bare
legs.

"Shore," agreed the outlaw. "An' when a fellar finds thet out there's
hope fer him."

The rest of that day he rode through a maze of wild country, at sunset
ending up on a weathered slope where he had to get off and walk.

"Hey, there!" he called back. "Fall off an' walk. If your hoss slides,
get out of his way. An' step lively so you won't go down in one of these
avalanches."

All of which would have given a cowboy something to do. Molly had to stop
often to rescue her friend, and more than once a scream rent the air. But
at length they got across and down this long slant of loose shale, and
entered a grassy wooded flat where water ran. Here Stone halted to make
camp.

"Wat-er!" choked Gloriana, huskily, as she sank down on the sward.

"Aha! Spittin' cotton, my proud beauty?" ejaculated the outlaw.

"Reckon you'd better have a drink out of my bottle." But she waved the
suggestion aside with a gesture of abhorrence. And when Molly came
carrying a dipper of water, Gloriana's great tragic eyes lit up. She
drank the entire contents of the rather large vessel.

"Wal, Glory, you have to go through a good deal before you find the real
value of things," remarked Stone, thoughtfully. "You see, most folks have
life too easy. Take the matter of this drink of cold pure spring water.
Sweet, wasn't it? You never knowed before how turrible sweet water could
be, did you? It's the difference between life an' death."

"Thanks, Molly," said Gloriana, gratefully. "Aren't you--thirsty?"

"Not very. You see, out heah we train ourselves to do without water an'
food. Like Indians, you know, Glory," replied Molly.

Plain indeed was it that Gloriana did not know; and that she was divided
in emotion between her pangs and the surprise of this adventure.

"Hey, Molly, stop gabbin' an' get to work," ordered Stone, dryly. "Our
St. Louis darlin' here will croak on us, if we ain't careful."

He slipped the axe out from under a rope on the pack, and proceeded to a
nearby spruce, from which he cut armloads of the thick fragrant boughs.
These he spread under an oak tree, and went back for more, watching the
girls out of the tail of his eye. Once he caught Gloriana's voice in
furious protest--"the lazy brute! Look at the size of him--and he makes
you lift those packs!" And Molly's reply: "Aw, this heah's easy, Glory.
An' I'm tellin' you again--don't make this desperado mad."

Then Stone slipped behind the spruce and peered through the branches.
Molly did lift off those heavy packs, and unsaddled the animal. Next she
turned to remove the saddle from her horse. At this Gloriana arose with
difficulty, and limping to the horse she had ridden she tugged at the
cinches, and laboured until she got them loose. Then she slid the big
saddle off. It was a man's saddle and heavy, which of course she had not
calculated upon, and down she went with it, buried almost out of sight.
Molly ran to lift it off. Stone saw the Eastern girl wring her helpless
hands. "Dog-gone tough on her," he soliloquised, and proceeded to get
another load of spruce boughs, which he carried over to the oak tree.

"Hey, Gloriana, fetch over thet bed roll," he called.

She paid no attention to him. Then he bellowed the order in the voice of
a bull. He heard Molly advise her to rustle. Whereupon Gloriana lifted
the roll in both arms and came wagging across the grass.

"Untie the rope," he said, not looking at her, and went on spreading the
boughs evenly. Presently, as she was so slow, he looked up. She was
wearily toiling at the knot.

"I--I can't untie it," she said.

"Wal, you shore are a helpless ninny," he returned, in disgust. "What in
Gawd's name can you do, Miss Traft? Play the concertina huh? An' fix your
hair pretty, huh? It's shore thunderin' good luck for some fine cowboy
thet I happened along an' saved him from marryin' you."

The marvel of that speech lay in its effect upon Gloriana, whose piteous
mute appeal to Molly showed she had been driven to believe it was true.

"See heah, Jed Stone," demanded Molly, loyally, "how could Glory help the
way she was brought up? Everybody cain't be born in Arizona."

"Misfortune, I call thet...But see heah, yourself, Molly Dunn. The more
you stick up fer this wishy-washy tenderfoot the wuss I'll be. Savvy?"

"You bet I savvy," rejoined Molly, resignedly.

"Wal then, rustle supper. I'm tired after thet ride. My neck's stiff from
turnin' round to watch Miss Traft. It was a circus, though...Gather some
wood, start a fire, put on the water to boil, mix biscuits, an' so
forth."

No one could ever have guessed that Molly Dunn had packed a horse and led
him, and had ridden over thirty miles of rough wilderness during the
hours of daylight. She was quick, deft, thorough in all camp tasks; and
it gave the outlaw pleasure to watch her, outside of his diabolical plot
to subjugate the Eastern girl.

"Say, if this heah's all the grub you fetched we'll eat it tonight," said
Molly.

"Go light on grub, I tell you. Mebbe I didn't pack enough. But I was
a-rarin' to get away from Tobe's Well."

"Molly, I'll help you or die trying," offered Gloriana. "But if that
queer pain comes to my side again--farewell."

"What pain, honey?"

"Reckon she's got appendicitis," drawled Stone, who allowed no word to
get by him unheard.

"It was in my left side--and, oh, it was awful!"

"Thet comes from ridin' a hoss when you're not used to it. But it'll not
kill you."

"Yes, it will, if I live long enough to mount that wild mustang again,"
avowed Gloriana. Then in a lower tone she added, "Molly, I thought Ed
Darnell was a villain. But, my, oh!--he's a saint compared with this
desperado."

"Oh, no, Glory. Jed Stone is an honest-to-Gawd desperado," expostulated
Molly.

"What's she sayin' aboot thet fellar Darnell an' me?" demanded Stone,
going to the fire.

"Jed, she saw Darnell back in Missouri," explained Molly.

"You don't say. Wal, thet's interestin'. Hope she didn't compare me to
him. Two-bit caird-sharp before he hit the West. An' then, like a puff of
smoke, he lit into crooked cattle-dealin'...An' did he last longer than
any of them dude Easterners who reckon they can learn us Westerners
tricks? He did not."

"What do you mean, Jed?" queried Molly, who divined when he was lying and
when he was not.

"Croak Malloy was in thet outfit Traft's cowboys rounded up in a cabin
down below Yellow Jacket. They'd been rustlin' the new Diamond stock an'
had to ride fer their lives. Wal, they didn't ride fer, not with your
redskin brother an' Curly Prentiss an' thet rodeo-ridin' bunch after
them. Croak said they set fire to the cabin, an' burned them out, an' he
got shot in the laig. But he escaped, an' it was when he was hidin' in the
brush thet he saw the cowboys string up Darnell along with two rustlers.
Croak said he never see a man kick like thet white-cuff, caird-slicker,
Darnell."

Gloriana's eyes were great black gulfs. "Mr. Stone, among other things
you're a liar," she said, deliberately.

"Wal, I'll be dog-goned!" ejaculated the outlaw, genuinely surprised and
not a little hurt. "I am, am I? Wal, you'll see, Miss Traft."

"You're trying to--to frighten me," she faltered, weakening. "Have you no
heart--no mercy?...I was once engaged to--to marry Darnell, or thought I
was. He followed me out here."

"Ahuh. What'd he foller you out heah for?"

"He swindled my father out of money, and I suppose he thought he could do
the same with Uncle Jim."

"Not old Jim Traft. Nix come the weasel! Old Jim cain't be
swindled...Wal, Miss Gloriana, I must say you was lucky to have Darnell
stack up against Curly Prentiss. I remember now thet Madden was in
Snell's gamblin'-den when Curly ketched Darnell cheatin' an' drove him
out of Flag. Funny he didn't bore thet caird-sharp. Reckon he savvied how
soon Darnell would come to the end of his rope. He did come soon--an' it
was a lasso."

"I don't believe you," replied Gloriana, steadily.

"Sweet on him yet, huh?"

"No, I despise him. Any punishment, even hanging, would be too good for
him," retorted Gloriana, with passion.

"See there, Molly. She's comin' round," drawled Stone. "We'll make a
Westerner of her yet."

"Jed, was there a fight down below Yellow Jacket?" asked Molly, with
agitation.

"Shore was. Malloy said he seen two cowboys shot, one of which he
accounted fer himself. But he didn't know either. An' so they couldn't
have been Jim or Slinger or Prentiss."

"Oh how'll we find out?" cried Molly in honest agony. And the tone of her
voice, the look of her, about finished Gloriana, who fell in a heap.

"Wal, what difference does it make," queried Stone, "to one of you,
anyhow? One of you girls is shore goin' with me, an' cowboys won't never
be no more in your young life. Haw haw!"

"I could stick this in you, Jed Stone," cried Molly, brandishing the
wicked butcher knife.

The outlaw reached down and lifted Gloriana upright. Gloriana's head
rolled. "Brace up," he said, and shook her. She found strength left to
resist. Then he clasped her in his arms and hugged her tight. And while
he did this he winked and grinned at Molly, who stood there aghast. "You
need a regular desperado hug to stiffen your spine...There! Now you stand
up an' do your work."

She did keep her feet, too, when he released her, and such eyes Jed Stone
had never seen. If he had been the real desperado he pretended, he would
have flinched and quailed under their magnificent fury.

While they sat at the meagre supper, Stone bedevilled Gloriana in every
way conceivable, yet to his satisfaction it did not prevent her from
eating her share. That was the answer. Let even the effete Easterner face
the facts of primal life and the balance was struck.

Darkness soon settled down, and twice Gloriana fell asleep beside the
fire. "Let's sit up--all night," she begged of Molly.

"I'd be willin', if he'd let us. But, Glory, dear, you jest couldn't.
You'd fall over. An' by mawnin' you'd be froze. We'll have to sleep with
Stone. He's put all the blankets on thet bed. An' I'll sleep in the
middle--so he cain't touch you."

"You'll do nothing of the sort," retorted Gloriana. And when they reached
the wide bed under the oak tree she crawled in the middle and stretched
out, as if she did not care what happened.

"Wal, now, thet's somethin' like," declared the outlaw, as he saw the
pale faces against the background of blankets. He sat down on the far
side of the bed and in the gloom contrived to remove his boots and spurs.
"Gurls, I'm liable to have nightmare. Often do when I'm scared or
excited. An' I'm powerful dangerous then. Shot a bedfellow once, when I
had a nightmare. So you wanta kick me awake in case I get to dreamin'."

It was not remarkable to Stone that almost before he had ceased talking
Gloriana was asleep. He knew what worn-out nature would do. Nevertheless,
as soon as Molly had dropped off he made such a commotion that he would
almost have awakened the dead. Then he began to snore outrageously, and
between snores he broke out into the thick weird utterance of a man in a
nightmare.

"Molly--Molly!" cried Gloriana, in a shrill whisper, as she clutched her
friend madly. "He's got it!"

"Sssh! Don't wake him. He won't be dangerous unless he wakes," replied
Molly.

Jed made the mental reservation that his little ally was all right, and
began to rack his brain for appropriate exclamations:

"AGGH! I'll--carve--your--gizzard!"

And he sprang up to thump back. Then he gave a capital imitation of
Malloy's croaking laugh. Then he shouted: "You can't have the gurl! She's
mine, Croak, she's mine!...I'll have your heart's blood!"

After which he snored some more, while listening intently. He did not
hear anything, but he thought he felt the bed trembling. Next he rolled
over, having thrown the blankets, to bump hard into Gloriana. But that
apparently did not awaken him. He laid a heavy arm across both the girls
and went on snoring blissfully.

"Molly," whispered Gloriana, in very low and blood-curdling voice.
"Let's--kill him--in his sleep!"

"Oh I wish we could, but we're not strong enough," replied Molly,
horrified. "Don't you dare move!"

In the grey of dawn he got up, pulled on his big boots, and went at the
camp-fire tasks, careful not to make noise. His two babes in the woods
were locked in sleep, also in each other's arms. Stone cooked the last of
the meat and boiled the last of the coffee. A few biscuits were left,
hard as rocks. Then he went to awaken the girls. Their heads were close
together, one dark, the other amber, and their sweet pale faces took the
first flush of the sunrise. It was a picture the outlaw would carry in
his memory always, and he found himself thanking God that he had come
upon Croak Malloy before they had suffered harm.

"Gurls, roll out," he called.

Molly awakened first and was bright and quick in an instant. She smiled,
and Jed thought he would treasure that smile. Then Gloriana's eyes popped
open. Dim gulfs of sleep! Stone turned away from them with a
conscience-stricken pang.

"Rustle an' eat. I gotta hunt the horses," he said.

Upon his return they had finished eating. Molly said: "Glory's bag is
missin'. With all her outdoor clothes!"

"Shore. I hid it. I don't want her dressin' up. She looks so cute in thet
outfit," he replied. "Saddle your hoss, you starin' idgit," he said to
Gloriana. "An' Molly, rustle with the bed an' packs while I eat."

Molly proved as capable as any cowboy, but poor Gloriana could not get
the saddle up, and when the pinto bit and kicked at her, which was no
wonder, she gave up coaxing and struck it smartly with a branch.

"Hyar! Don't beat thet pony," expostulated Stone. "Who'd ever think you'd
show cruelty to a dumb beast?"

"Dumb! He sure is," replied Gloriana, "and he's not the only ---- thing
around that ought to be beaten."

"Molly, you cain't never tell aboot people till you get them in the
woods," said Stone, reflectively. "Their real natoor comes out. I reckon
Glory, hyar, would have murdered Croak Malloy in cold blood if he'd got
away with her. It's turrible to contemplate."

Soon they were mounted and riding in single file, as on the day before.
Stone led them out of this gorge, miles and miles through the forest, out
into the sunny desert, and back again, and finally, without a halt to the
rim of the Black Brakes. He followed along that until mid-afternoon, when
he came to a trail he knew, which was seldom used even by rustlers,
unless pressed. Here they had to walk down and it was no fun. "Don't let
your hoss fall on you," was all Stone said. At a particularly bad descent
Gloriana and her pinto both fell, and she miraculously escaped being
rolled on. "Whew!" ejaculated Stone. "I reckoned you was a goner then.
The Lord shore watches over you."

"I don't care," panted the girl. "I'd sooner die--that way--than some
other way." Her spirit was hard to break. She seemed to recover her
courage after each successive trial. But her strength was almost spent.
Stone calculated their position at that hour was less than a dozen miles
below Yellow Jacket. And his intention was, if Gloriana could stand it,
to climb out of the brakes and ride to the head of Yellow Jacket, where
he could show the girls their way and then take leave of them. There was
a risk of being held up along the trail by one or more of the Diamond
outfit, but since he had the girls to credit him with their rescue he had
little to worry about. Still, he did not want that to happen. He had
planned a climax to his plot.

The sun set behind the western wall of the brakes; a mellow roar of
running water filled the forest with dreaming music. Stone thought it
about time to choose a place to camp, and he desired it to be remote from
the trail, which he believed ran somewhat to his left along the stream.
With this end in view he wormed his way through the woods toward the wall
they had long since descended.

It loomed above him, grey and lofty, always silent and protective. And
suddenly he emerged into an open space, where tall spruces and
wide-spreading sycamores dominated the green. The glade appeared
familiar, and as Gloriana and Molly rode out of the forest he reined his
horse.

"O my God--look!" cried Molly, in accents of horror.

Simultaneously, then, Stone's sense accounted for a smell of burned wood,
the pile of charred logs that was once the trapper's cabin, and three
grotesque and hideously swaying figures of men, hanging limp by their
necks from a prominent branch of a sycamore.

Stone's shock had its stimulus in Gloriana's shriek. She swayed and slid
out of the saddle. He caught her and lifted her in front of him, a dead
weight.

"Jed--this heah is too much," expostulated Molly, hoarsely. She looked as
if she, too, would faint.

Cursing under his breath, he turned to the girl. "I swear it was
accident," he vowed, earnestly. "We were east of the trail, an' if I
thought aboot it at all, I reckoned we were far from thet old cabin. By
Gawd! I'm sorry, Molly. It is too much."

"Jed, I'll be--keelin' over, too," gasped Molly. "Thet's a hard sight for
me, let alone Glory...If I recognised Darnell, she recognised him, you
bet."

"Shore she did. I never seen him but once, an' I knew him. An' there's my
old Sheriff Lang, his star still a-shinin' on his vest. An' Joe
Tanner...Wal, thet's shore a cowboy job, slick an' clean. Thet's the way
of the West!"

Stone halted in the first likely spot for camp, and slipping out of his
saddle with Gloriana in his arms, he laid her down on a soft pine-needle
mat. She was conscious.

"Tend to her, Molly," said Stone, briefly, and he turned to look after
the horses. Then he cut ample spruce boughs for two beds, and made them,
one of which, for the girls, he laid in a protected niche of the cliff.
Having finished these tasks, he approached his prisoners.

"There's nothin' to eat."

"Small matter, Jed. Our appetites are shore not a-rarin'," replied Molly.

Gloriana transfixed him with solemn tragic eyes.

"I take back--calling you a liar," she said, simply.

"Thanks. I accept your apology."

"Who--who did that?" she asked, with gesture to indicate the tragedy down
the valley.

"What? Who did what?"

"Hanged those men?"

"I reckon thet was Curly Prentiss an' his pards. Shore young Jim had a
hand in it, onless, of course, Curly an' Jim got killed by the rustlers.
Some of the Diamond were done for, thet's shore."

"But--you--said--" she faltered, piteously.

"Shore. I said I reckoned it wasn't Jim or Curly. I forgot thet. Must
have been one or more of them daredevils. Bud or Lonestar--an' mebbe
Slinger. I seen where blood had dripped on the leaves, about saddle-high,
along the trail. Some cowboys packed out, shore."

That surely finished Gloriana and all but did the same for Molly. She had
just strength left to help Stone carry Gloriana to bed. The outlaw then
sought his own rest, and the meditations inspired by the latest
developments. This adventure had not lost its sting, despite the knocking
at the gate of his conscience. Tomorrow would see the end of it and he
must not fail in the task he had set himself.

Morning disclosed Molly to be herself again, and Gloriana able to get up,
though she could not stand erect. She could do nothing but watch the
others saddle and pack. Still, her perceptions were all the keener, and
she paid Molly mute and eloquent tribute of appreciation.

"I'm made of straw and water," she said, humbly.

"Wal, Gloriana, darlin', a thing of beauty is a joy for ever," rejoined
Stone, with gallant cheerfulness.

Before they reached the head of the Yellow Jacket, which Stone was
approaching, he had fears the Eastern girl would not make it. Yet a
little rest enabled her to go on, without complaint, without appeal for
mercy.

At last Stone espied the new road, where it turned to go down into the
canyon. He halted before the girls noticed it and dismounted near the
rim.

"Wal, we've reached the partin' of the trails," he said. "There's a ranch
down heah where one of you can go an' send word to the cowboys. 'Cause I
can't take you both with me any farther, I'm a hunted desperado, you
know. An' I've gotta hole up till all this blows over. One of you goes
with me."

"Take us both--Jed," implored Molly, and that plainly was her last word
in this trick perpetrated upon an innocent tenderfoot.

"No, Molly, I will go," interposed Gloriana. "You love Jim. He worships
you...There's no one cares for me or--or whom I care for...And I'm not
strong, as you've seen from my miserable frailty on this ride. I won't
live long, so it'll not matter much."

Molly, with eyes suddenly full of tears, averted her gaze. Stone regarded
the Eastern girl with poignant emotion he gladly hid.

"Ahuh. So you'll go willin'?"

"Yes, since you compel me. But on one condition."

"An' what's thet?"

"You must--marry me honestly. I have religious principles."

"Wal, I reckon I could fetch a padre down into the brakes--where we'll be
hidin'," replied Stone. "An' so--Miss Gloriana Traft--you'd marry
me--Jed Stone of the Hash-Knife--thief, killer, outlaw, desperado--to
save your friend?"

"Yes, I'll do even that for Jim and Molly."

Suddenly Jed Stone turned away, gripped by a whirlwind of passion. It had
waylaid him, at this pathway of middle life, like a tiger in ambush. All
the hard, bitter years of outlawry rose like a hydra-headed monster to
burn his soul with the poison of hate, revenge, lust, and the longing to
kill. To wreak his vengeance upon civilisation by despoiling the
innocence and crushing the life of this young girl! The thing roared in
his brain, a hell-storm of fury. He had never realised the depths into
which he had been thrust until this madness wrapped him in a whirling
flame.

Far beyond his hope had he succeeded in forcing latent good into being.
This Eastern girl had really defeated him. What could be greater than
sacrificing virtue and life itself for her friend? Stone bowed under
that. Gloriana Traft had love--which was greater than all the fighting
instincts he had meant to rouse. It would have been an error of nature to
have created such a beautiful being as this girl and not have endowed her
with unquenchable spirit. She was as noble, in her extremity, as she was
beautiful. Her eyes and lips, the turn of her face, were no falsehoods.
And so Jed Stone divined how he was to profit by the courage of a girl he
had driven to such desperate straits. The lesson, the good, would rebound
upon him.

"Ride over hyar a step," he said to the girls, and he pointed down into
the canyon. "This is Yellow Jacket, an' thet new house you see way down
there in the green is Jim Traft's."

While they stared he went back to mount his own horse and turn to them
again.

"The road is right hyar," he went on, as coolly and casually as if that
fact was nothing momentous. "Shore you can make it thet fer."

Then he patted Molly's dusky tousled head: "Good-bye, little wood-mouse.
Be good--"

"Oh, Jed," cried Molly, wildly, with tears streaming down her cheeks.
"Remember aboot never--rustlin' no more!"

Stone turned to the Eastern girl. "Big-eyes!" he called her, for that was
the most felicitous of all names for her then. "So long!--Marry Curly or
Bud, an' have some real Western kids...But don't never forget your
desperado!"

As he spurred away he heard her poignant call: "Oh wait--wait!" But Jed
Stone rode as never had he from sheriffs and posse, from vengeful cowboys
who pursued with gun and rope.



CHAPTER TWENTY

It was Sunday evening at the ranch-house down in Yellow Jacket. The big
living-room shone bright and new with lamp and blazing fire. Jim had been
endeavouring to write a letter to his uncle, reporting loss of two
thousand head of Diamond brand stock, and the fight at the cabin down in
the brakes, which had entailed a more serious loss. But the letter for
many reasons was difficult to write. For one thing, Molly and Gloriana
would surely see it, and as Gloriana took care of her uncle's mail she
would be very likely to read it first. And it had to be bad news. Jim
could not gloss over the deaths of Uphill Frost and Hump Stevens, nor the
serious condition of Slinger Dunn and Bud Chalfack. Moreover, he found it
impossible to confess to his part in that fight. On the moment Curly was
trying to keep the fretful and feverish Bud from reopening wounds.
Lonestar Holliday read quietly by the lamplight across the table from
Jim, but he could not sit still, and as he moved his bandaged foot from
one resting-place to another he betrayed the pain he was suffering. Jack
Way wore the beatific smile which characterised his visage while writing
to the absent bride.

"I can't write to Uncle Jim," began Jim. "If he doesn't show up here in a
few days I'll have to ride to Flag."

"An' take Jack with you?" queried Bud, in a terrible voice.

"Yes. Jack has a wife, you know."

"An' leave the rest of us hyar fer Croak Malloy to wipe out, huh?"

Jim paced the floor. The matter was not easy to decide, and more than
once he had convinced himself that the longing to see Molly had a good
deal to do with the need to go to Flagerstown.

"Of course, if you boys think there's a chance of Malloy coming back--"

"Wal, Jim," interposed Curly, coolly. "As I see it you'd better wait.
We've managed to get along without a doctor, an' I reckon we can do the
same without reportin' to old Jim. He'll roar, shore, but let him roar.
This last few weeks hasn't been any fun fer us. Somebody will get wind of
thet fight an' Flag will heah aboot it."

"All right, I'll give up the idea about going, as well as writing. It'll
be a relief," replied Jim, and indeed the outspoken renunciation helped
him. "You know one reason I wanted to go was to block Uncle Jim's
fetching Molly and Glory down here."

"Aw!" breathed Bud, reproachfully. "An' me dyin' hyar by inches."

"Let Uncle Jim fetch the girls," rejoined Curly, stoutly.

"Curly, you're a cold-blooded Arizonian," declared Jim, with both
irritation and admiration. "Here's the deal. We had to take Slinger home
to West Fork, shot to pieces. Bud's on his back, full of bullets and bad
temper. Lonestar hobbles about making you grind your teeth. And out there
under the pines lie two of the Diamond in their graves!"

"Wal, it's shore sad," replied Curly, "but the fact is we got off lucky.
An' we cain't dodge what's comin' because of what's past. I reckon thet
fight aboot broke the Hash-Knife fer keeps. I'm pretty shore I crippled
Malloy. I was shootin' through smoke, but I seen him fall. An' then I
couldn't see him any more. He got away, an' thet leaves him, Madden, an'
Jed Stone, of the Hash-Knife. Stone won't stand fer the kind of rustlers
Malloy has been ringin' in of late. Thet Joe Tanner outfit, let alone
such hombres as Bambridge an' Darnell. So heah we are, not so bad off.
An' I reckon we could take care of your uncle an' the girls."

Cherry Winters came in at that juncture, carrying a rifle and a haunch of
venison. The cool fragrance of the night and the woods accompanied him.

"Howdy, all!" he said, cheerfully.

"What kept you, Cherry?" asked Curly.

"Nothin'. I jest ambled along. Reckon I was pretty fur up the crick. Got
to watchin' the beaver."

"Jeff has kept supper on for you," added Jim. "You know how sore he gets
when we're late? Rustle now."

Jim went out on the porch.

The trouble with Jim was that he had not been weaned of his tenderfoot
infancy; he had swallowed too big a dose of Arizona and he was sick.
Beginning with Sonora's ambush--which only Slinger's timely shot had
rendered futile--a series of happenings had tested Jim out to the limit.
He had been found wanting, so far as stomach was concerned, and he knew
it. Asleep and awake, that fight before the burning cabin had haunted
him. No use to balk at the truth! He had taken cool bead with rifle at an
oncoming and shooting, yelling rustler, and well he knew who had tumbled
him over, like a bagged turkey. Afterwards Jim had looked for a
bullethole where he had aimed, and had found it. That was harsh enough.
But the fact that he had, in common with his cowboys, turned deaf ear
alike to the cursings and pleadings of the gambler Darnell, and had
himself laid strong hands on that avenging rope, had like a boomerang
rebounded upon him. All the arguments about rustlers, raids,
self-preservation, had not been sufficient to cure him. Reality was
something incalculably different from conjecture and possibility. In the
Cibeque fight, rising out of the drift fence, he had been unable to take
an active part; and so the killing of Jocelyn and the Haverlys by Slinger
Dunn had rested rather easily upon his conscience. But now he was an
Arizonian with blood on his hands. He still needed a violent and constant
cue for passion.

Curly came outside presently: "Fine night, Boss, an' it's good to feel we
can peek out an' not be scared of bullets. I reckon, though, thet feelin'
oughtn't to be trusted fer long. We'll heah from Croak Malloy before the
summer is over."

"Yes, it's a fine night, I suppose," sighed Jim. "But almost--I wish I
was back in Missouri."

"Never havin' seen Arizona an' Molly?" drawled the cowboy, with his cool,
kindly tone.

"Even that."

"But more special--never havin' killed a man?"

"Curly!"

"Shore you cain't fool me, Jim, old boy. I was aboot when it come off. I
seen you bore thet rustler. Fact is I had a bead on him myself."

"I--I didn't dream anybody knew," replied Jim, hoarsely. "Please don't
tell, Curly."

"Wal, I cain't promise fer the rest of the outfit. Bud seen it, from
where he fell. An' what's more, he seen thet rustler shoot Hump daid."

"He did?" cried Jim, a dark hot wave as of blood with consciousness
surging to his head. A subtle change marked his exclamation.

"Shore. An' Lonestar reckoned he seen the same. Wal, thet rustler was Ham
Beard. We searched him, before we buried him. Used to be a Winslow
bar-tender till he murdered someone. Then he took to cattle-stealin'.
Sort of a lone wolf an' shore a daid shot. If it hadn't been fer thet
smoke he an' Croak might have done fer all of us. Though I reckon in thet
case, if they'd charged us without the cover of smoke, we'd have stopped
them with our rifles...It was a mess, Jim, an' you ought to pat yourself
on the back instead of mopin' around."

Jim realised this clearly, and in the light of Curly's cool illuminating
talk he felt the relaxing of a gloomy shade.

"If Glory an' Molly never hear of it--I guess I'll stand it," he said.

"Wal, you can bet your last pair of wool socks in zero weather thet our
beloved Bud will spring it on the girls."

"No!"

"Shore. An' not because of his itch to talk. It'll be pride, Jim, unholy
pride in your addition to the toll of the Diamond."

"I'll beg him not to, and if that's not enough I'll beat him."

"Wal, Mizzouri, it cain't be did," drawled Curly.

Curly was not as easy in mind as might have appeared to a superficial
observer. He was restless; he walked up and down the canyon trail. Jim
noted that Curly's blue flashing eyes were ever on the alert. And when
Jim finally commented about this, Curly surprised him with a whisper:
"Nix on thet, Mizzouri. I don't want Bud or Lonestar to worry. They make
fuss enough. But I'll tell you somethin'. This very day, when you were
eatin' dinner, I seen a rider's black sombrero bobbin' above the rim wall
there. On the east rim, mind you!"

"Curly!...A black sombrero? You might've been mistaken," replied Jim.

"Shore. It might have been a black hawk or a raven. But my eyes are
pretty sharp, Jim."

Hours of uneasiness on Jim's part followed, and apparently casual
strolling the porch on Curly's. Nothing happened, and at length Jim
forgot about the circumstance. He went back to his account-books,
presently to be disturbed by the nervous Bud.

"Boss, I thought I heerd a call a little while ago, but I didn't want to
bother you. But now I shore heerd hosses."

"You did?" Jim listened with strained ears, while he gazed around the
living-room. Lonestar was asleep, and so was Cherry, while Jack, writing
as usual, could not have heard the crack of doom. But Jim distinctly
caught a soft thud, thud, thud of hoofs.

"Curly!" he called sharply. That jerked the sleepers wide awake, but it
did not fetch Curly.

"Boys, something up. We hear horses. And Curly doesn't answer. Grab your
rifles."

"Listen, Boss!" ejaculated Bud.

Then Jim caught a call from outside: "Jim--oh, Jim!"

"Molly!" he shouted, wildly, and rushed out, to be followed by the three
uninjured cowboys. No sign of horses down the trail. But under the pines
in the other direction moved brown figures, now close at hand, emerging
from the grove. Molly led, on a big raw-boned bay horse. Hatless, her
dusky hair flying, she called again: "Jim--oh, Jim!"

Roused out of stupefaction, Jim rushed to meet her. "Molly! for Heaven's
sake, how'd you get here?" he cried as she reined in the bay. She dropped
a halter of a pack-horse she was leading. Then Jim saw that she was
brush-covered and travel-stained. Her hair was full of pine needles, and
her eyes shone unnaturally large and bright. Jim's rapture suffered a
check. He looked beyond her, to see Curly supporting Gloriana in the
saddle of a third horse. Her head drooped, her hair hung in a tawny mass.

"My God! what's happened?" he exclaimed, in sudden terror.

"Shore a lot. Don't look so scared, Jim. We're all right...Help me down."

She slipped into his arms, most unresisting, Jim imagined, and for once
his kisses brought blushes without protest. If she did not actually squeeze
him, then he was dreaming. He set her down upon her feet, still keeping an
arm around her.

"What--what's all this?" he stammered, looking back to see Gloriana fall
into Curly's arms. As Curly carried her up the porch steps Jim caught a
glimpse of Gloriana's face. Then he dragged Molly with him into the
house.

"Curly, let me down," Gloriana was saying.

But Curly did not hear, or at least obey. "For Gawd's sake, darlin', tell
me you--you're not hurt or--or anythin'."

No longer was Gloriana's face white. "Let me down, I say," she cried,
imperiously. Whereupon Curly became aware of his behaviour, and he set
her down in the big arm-chair, to gaze at her as at a long-lost treasure
found.

"Glory!--What crazy trick--have you sprung on us?" gasped Jim, striding
close, still hanging to Molly. He stared incredulously at his sister. Her
flimsy dress had once been light-coloured. It seemed no longer a dress,
scarcely a covering, and it was torn to shreds and black from contact
with burned brush. But that appeared only little cause for the effect she
produced upon Jim and his comrades. One arm was wholly bare, scratched
and dirty and bloody; her legs were likewise. To glance over these only
forced the gaze back to Gloriana's face. The havoc of terrible mental and
physical strain showed in its haggard outlines. But her eyes seemed a
purple radiant blaze of rapture, or thanksgiving. They would have
reassured a cynic that all was well with heart and soul--that life was
good.

"Oh--Jim," she whispered, lifting a weak hand to him, and as he clasped
it, to sink on one knee beside her chair, she lay back and closed her
eyes. "I'm here--I'm safe. Oh, thank Heaven!"

"Glory, dear, what in the world happened?" begged Jim.

On the other side of the chair Curly lifted her hand, which clung to a
battered old sombrero, full of bullet holes.

"Jim, this heah's what I seen bobbin' above the rim," he said, in amazed
conjecture. "Whose hat is this? Reckon it looks some familiar."

He could not remove it from the girl's tight clutch.

"Thet sombrero belonged to Croak Malloy," interposed Molly, who stood
back of Jim, smoothing the pine needles out of her tangled hair.

"Holy Mackeli!" burst out Curly. "I knew it. I recognised thet hat...Jim,
as shore as Gawd made little apples thet croakin' gun-thrower is daid."

"Daid? I should smile he is," corroborated Molly, laconically. "Daid as a
door nail."

The tremendousness of that truth, which no one doubted, commanded
profound silence. Even Curly Prentiss had no tongue.

"Jed Stone killed Malloy, an' Madden, too," went on Molly, bright-eyed,
enjoying to the full the sensation she was creating.

Jim echoed the name of the Hash-Knife leader, but Curly, to whom that
name had so much more deadly significance, still could not speak.

"Molly Dunn, I'm a hurted cowpuncher," called Bud from his bed. "An' if
you don't tell pronto what's come off, I'll be wuss."

Gloriana opened her eyes, and let them dwell lovingly upon her brother,
and then Molly, after which they wandered to the standing, wide-eyed
cowboys, and lastly to the stricken Curly, whose adoration was
embarrassingly manifest.

"Tell them, Molly," she whispered. "I--can't talk."

"We planned to surprise you, Jim," began Molly. "It took some persuadin'
to get Uncle Jim in on our job. But we did. An' let's see--five days
ago--early mawnin' we left Flag in the buckboard Pedro drivin'. That
night we slept at Miller's ranch. Next mawnin' at the fork of the road we
got held up by Croak Malloy, an' two of his pards, Madden an' Reeves.
They'd jest happened to run into us. Uncle Jim didn't know Malloy until
he shot Pedro. Malloy robbed Uncle, took our bags, an' threw us on
horses. An' he told Uncle to go back to Flag, dig up ten thousand
dollars, an' send it by rider to Tobe's Well, where it was to be put in
the loft by the chimney. Malloy drove us off then, into the woods, an'
along in the afternoon we reached Tobe's Well. We'd jest been dragged in,
an' they'd hawg-tied me, an' Malloy was tearin' Glory's clothes off, when
in comes Jed Stone. He shore filled thet cabin...Wal, Croak was sore at
being interrupted, an' Jed raved aboot what Uncle Jim would do. Queer
what stress he put on Uncle Jim! Called him Jim!...Croak got sorer at all
the fuss Jed was makin' over nothin'. Then Jed stamped up and down,
wringin' his hands. But when quick as a cat he turned one of them held a
boomin' gun. I shut my eyes. Jed shot two more times. I heahed one of the
rustlers run out, an' when I looked again Malloy an' Madden were daid,
an' Reeves had escaped."

"Wal, of all deals I ever seen in my born days!" ejaculated Curly
Prentiss as Molly paused, gradually yielding to excitement engendered by
her narrative. Her big eyes glowed like coals.

"Wal, it turned out we'd only fallen out of the fryin'-pan into the
fire," went on Molly, presently. "Jed had run into Uncle Jim, an'
learnin' aboot the hold-up, he'd trailed us, an' he killed them men jest
to have us girls all to himself. It began then...Whew, what a desperado
Jed Stone was! He had to beat me with a switch. An' when he was fightin'
an' kissin' me Glory grabbed up the butcher knife to kill him. She'd been
put to makin' biscuits while Jed made love to me. He had to shoot at her,
an' she fainted again...He let us alone then. Next mawnin' we rustled off
quick, without hardly any grub, an' he rode us all over the Diamond. He
got lost, he said. We had two more days of ridin', up an' down, through
the brush, over rocks. Oh, it was bad even for me. All the time Jed made
me do the work an' near drove Glory crazy. One night he forced us to
sleep in the same bed with him, an' gave us choice of who was to lie in
the middle. Glory wouldn't let me. He had nightmare. Yesterday, late
afternoon, we slid an' rolled down into the canyon, an' soon we rode
plumb into thet place where you hanged Darnell an' the two rustlers...The
sight near keeled me over. An' poor Glory--But enough said aboot thet. We
camped above there, an' this mawnin' climbed out again. Glory was all in,
starved an' so sick after seein' those daid men, hangin' like sacks by
their necks, thet she couldn't sit up in her saddle. I had to hold her.
We went along the rim till we came to the road. An' there Jed said he'd
located himself again, an' we'd have to separate, as he could take only
one of us with him, the other goin' to a ranch he said was down heah. I
begged him not to separate us...an' then Glory told Jed she would go with
him, to save me!...Then flabbergasted Jed, as you could see. He hadn't
savvied Glory. He'd been daid set to make her squeal an' show
yellow--which she shore didn't...An' then what do you reckon he said?"

Only questioning eyes made any return to that.

"He patted me on the haid, called me Wood-mouse, an' then to Glory,
'Big-eyes, go marry Curly or Bud, an' have some real Western kids, an'
never forget your desperado.'...Then he rode off like mad. An' after
Glory had braced up we found the road, An' heah we are!"

"Of all the strange things!" exclaimed Jim.

The cowboys were mystified. Curly ran his lean brown hand through his
tawny locks, in action of great perplexity.

"Molly, was Jed drunk?"

"No. He had a bottle, an' he made Glory drink some of the stuff. But he
didn't drink any."

"Bud, you heah Molly's story?" went on the nonplussed Curly.

"Yes, an' if she ain't lyin', Jed Stone was locoed. Thet happened, mebbe,
when he seen Glory, an' it ain't no wonder."

"Bud Chalfack, don't you dare hint I'm not tellin' the truth," declared
Molly, approaching his bed, and then seeing how white and drawn his face
was, how prone his sunk frame, she fell on her knees, with a cry of pity.

"Wal, ain't you only a kid, an' turrible in love?" he growled. "You
couldn't see straight, let alone tell anything straight...I'm a dyin'
cowpuncher, Molly. I reckon you'd better kiss me."

"Oh, Bud, I'm so sorry. Are you in pain?" she asked.

"I shore am, but you an Glory might ease it some."

Whereupon she kissed his cheek and smoothed the damp hair back from his
wrinkled brow. That fetched a smile to Bud's face, until it almost bore
semblance to the cherubic visage he possessed when in good health and
spirits.

"Glory, ain't you comin' over to kiss me, like Molly done?" he asked,
plaintively.

"I am, surely, Bud, as soon--as I'm able," she replied, smiling wanly. "I
hope and pray you're not serious--about dying."

"Aw, I am, Glory. But I might be saved," he said, significantly. "If only
I jest didn't want to croak."

"Hush, you sick boy. Molly and I will nurse you."

At that Curly arose with a disgusted look, muttering under his breath:
"If it takes thet, I reckon I can get shot up some."

Jim came out of his trance. "Boys, in our surprise and joy we're
forgetting the girls...Curly, fetch hot water, and tell Jeff to fix
something fit for starved people. Cherry, bring in the bags...Now, Glory,
I'll carry you upstairs...Come, Molly."

"Oh, such a wonderful, sweet-smelling house!" murmured Gloriana as he
carried her along a wide hall, into the end room, sunny and open. It was
bare except for a built-in bed of sycamore branches, upon which lay a
thick spread of spruce foliage. He gently deposited Gloriana there, only
to find her arms round his neck.

"Jim, brother--my old world came to an end today," she murmured,
dreamily.

"Yes. But you can tell me all when you're rested again," he replied, and
kissing her cheek he disengaged himself and turned to meet Molly, who had
followed. "Molly, you two use this room. Make her comfortable. Put her to
bed. Feed her sparingly. And have a care for yourself...What a kid you
are! To go through all that ride and come out like this!--Damn Jed Stone.
Yet I bless him! I can't make it out."

Curly and the cowboys came up, packing things, and Curly lingered,
unmindful of Jim or Molly.

"Glory, I beg your pardon for callin' you darlin', in front of the
outfit," he said, humbly. "I was shore out of my haid. But they all know
aboot me."

She transfixed him with eyes of awe and reproach, almost horror.

"Curly, I--I ought to shudder at sight of you," she said, very low. "But
I--I don't."

"There! That'll be about all for you," interrupted Jim, and he shoved the
shy and stricken cowboy out of the room, to follow on his heels.

"What'd she mean, Jim?" Curly asked, huskily.

"I don't know, but I imagine it's a lot--from Gloriana Traft."

Curly stalked downstairs and out into the open, like a man who did not
see where he stepped. He remained absent until sunset. At supper, which
was a silent meal, in deference to the sleeping girls upstairs, he ate
but little, and that with a preoccupied air. Later he sought out Jim.

"Boss, I been thinkin' a heap aboot Molly's yarn," he said, ponderingly.
"An' it's shore a queer one. The idee of Jed Stone bein' lost!...Heah's
what I make of it--if you swear on your knees you'll never squeal on me."

"I promise, pard," returned Jim, feelingly.

"Wal, you remember how crazy Glory was to heah aboot desperadoes. Now she
took Jed fer one, an' I'll bet he was cute enough not to disappoint her.
Jed must have hatched up some deal with Molly, to fool Glory, to scare
her, to find out if she had any real stuff in her. Thet an' thet only can
account fer Jed's queer doin's an' Molly's queer story."

"But, Curly, was that motive enough?" asked Jim, incredulously.

"No, I reckon it wasn't," admitted the cowboy. "They had to have a deeper
one. Now, Jed knew Molly when she was a baby, always was fond of her.
Molly is shore Arizona, Jim. So is Jed. But you cain't savvy thet because
you're an Easterner. An' to boil it down I reckon Jed scared Glory an'
starved her an' drove her jest fer Molly's sake. An' in the end Glory
took the brim off their cup by meanin' to give herself up to save Molly's
honour. Glory was plumb fooled, an' clean honest an' as big as life. It
was great, Jim. An' if I hadn't been in love with her before, I shore
would be now."

"If that's true, Molly is an awful little liar," said Jim, dubiously.

"Wal, yes an' no. It depends on how you see it. Molly worships Glory, an'
she couldn't have meant anythin' but good. An' good it shore was an' is.
Thet gurl is changed."

"Ahuh. I begin to savvy, maybe. I believe I did notice some little
difference, which I put down to her joy at being safe again with us."

"Shore it was thet. But more. If I don't miss my guess, Gloriana will
never see through Jed an' Molly. An' thet's jest as well. I hope the
lesson wasn't too raw. But thet sister of yours has guts...When she gets
rested she'll appreciate things as they are out heah."

Next day Molly showed up downstairs, in changed garb, merry and shy by
turns; and she surely was beleaguered by the cowboys. Eventually Jim
contrived to get her away from Bud, and to walk out to look over Yellow
Jacket. She was enraptured.

"Molly, the end of the Hash-Knife makes a vast difference," Jim was
saying as he halted with her on the log bridge across the amber stream.
"We can actually live down here, eventually. But not till next year, and
then you must have frequent visits to Flag...You haven't forgotten your
promise to marry me this fall, have you?"

"Oh, did I promise, Jim?" she asked, in shy pretence of surprise.

"You sure did."

"Wal, then, say late November."

"But that's winter!"

"November? Oh, no, thet's the last of fall."

"Gosh! how long to wait!...But I love you so and you're such a wonderful
girl--I guess I can wait."

"Maybe--the middle of November," she whispered, whereupon Jim, with a
glad shout, snatched her into his arms, to the imminent peril of their
falling off the log that bridged the brook.

Next morning late a lovely and languid Gloriana trailed shakily down the
winding stairs into the living-room. Dark shadows enhanced the depth and
hue of her eyes. She wore white, and to Bud and Curly, at least, she
might have been an angel. But to Jim she appeared spent and shaken,
completely warped out of her old orbit. She was made much of by the
cowboys, except Curly, who worshipped and glowered by turns, from afar.
Bud took advantage of Gloriana's pledge of the day before and held her to
it, after which he held her hand. At length Curly lunged out of the room,
as if he meant to destroy himself, and then almost immediately he lunged
back again. Jim understood his pangs, and when Curly gravitated to him,
as always happened when he was cast down, Jim whispered:

"Pard, it doesn't mean anything!"

"Wal, I'll shore find out pronto," replied Curly, in heroic mood. "Never
do to let her get hold of herself again."

Presently the other cowboys went out on the porch, to take up tasks, or
to amuse Lonestar, who had a chair outside. This left Jim and Molly at
the table. Gloriana sat on the edge of Bud's bed, which consisted of
blankets over spruce boughs, laid on the floor. Curly, who had before
wandered around like a lost dog, now watched his friend and his
sweetheart with flashing blue eyes. They apparently were oblivious of the
others.

"Glory, you're the beautifulest gurl," Bud was saying.

"Silly, you've seen prettier ones," she replied, but she was pleased, and
she stroked his hair with her free hand.

"Nope. They don't walk on Gawd's green earth," returned her champion
firmly.

"Bud, I'm to be here all summer," she said, with a smile of enchantment
"Oh, it's so heavenly here. I didn't know...Will you be all right
soon--so you can ride with me--teach me how to handle a horse? I'm so
stupid--so weak. Why, that pinto bucked me off!"

"She did? Son-of-a-gun! I'll beat her good fer thet."

"No you won't. I love her."

"Love a pinto!...Is thet all?"

"Bud, I love every horse--everything--everybody in Arizona."

"Aw, thet's wuss."

Jim, entranced at this by-play, suddenly felt a tug. "Look at Curly,"
uttered Molly.

Curly seemed to have become transformed back to the old cool, easy
cowboy, an unknown quantity, potent with some secret of imperturbable
assurance. Yet Jim divined his was the grandeur of despair.

"Glory," drawled Curly, as he sat down on the bed, opposite her, and
possessed himself of Bud's other restless hand, "we've been like brothers
for six years...Bud an' I...An' I reckon this last fight I evened up an
old debt. When Bud went down, thet rustler would have killed him but fer
me."

"Pard, what's ailin' you--thet you never told me before?" demanded Bud,
his voice deep and rich.

"No call fer it, Bud."

Gloriana looked from one to the other fascinated, and vaguely troubled.
Her intuition distrusted the moment.

"Dog-gone! I had a hunch you did. Shore as hell thet's why you missed the
chance at Croak Malloy."

"I reckon." Then Curly looked up at the girl. "I jest wanted you both to
know, in case I don't stay on heah."

"Stay on--heah?" faltered Gloriana, in her surprise actually imitating
him. Then her eyes dilated with divining thoughts.

"Now what I want to know--seein' Bud an' I are the same as
brothers--which of us is to call you sister?"

"Curly!" she entreated.

"Aw, pard!" burst out Bud.

"This son-of-a-gun ain't bad hurt," went on Curly. "I've seen him with
more and worse gun-shot wounds. He's only workin' on your sympathy. Wal,
thet's all right. But it makes me declare myself right heah an' now."

"Please, Curly--oh, don't."

"You know I love you, Glory," he continued, coolly and slowly. "Only it's
more since I told you first. An' I asked you to marry me an' let me be
the one to help you tackle this tough Arizona...Well, thet was
Christmas-time, aboot. You promised to write your answer. But you never
did. An' I reckon now I'm wantin' to heah it ."

"But Curly--how unreasonable! Wait, I beg of you. I--I'm upset by this
adventure. I don't know myself."

"Wal, you know whether you love me or not. So answer pronto, lady."

She drooped her lustrous head a moment, then raised it, fearlessly, as
one driven to the wall.

"Curly, you're not greatly different from Jed Stone," she said.

"I reckon thet a compliment."

"I'm not sure yet how or what I feel toward you, Curly, except that I
know I'm not worthy. But since you insist I--I say yes." And with wistful
smile she held out her free hand to him. Curly clasped it in both his and
carried it to his breast, his face pale, his eyes intense.

"Whoopee!" yelled Bud in stentorian tones. "I knowed I could fetch him.
All the time I knowed it--the handsome jealous geezer!"

Next day Uncle Jim Traft drove down into Yellow Jacket.

No suggestion of the hard old cattleman! He was merry and keen, full of
energy to see and hear, and somehow mysteriously buoyant. At Jim's
hurried report of the lost cattle he replied: "Pooh-pooh! Only an
incident in a rancher's life!" But he gazed sorrowfully down at the
graves of those cowboys who had died for the Diamond. They had not been
the first, and perhaps they would not be the last.

Curly related the story of the fight at the trapper's cabin. Molly led
him aside to tell her version of their adventure with Croak Malloy and
Jed Stone. And Bud with pride rare exhibited the headpiece of carved
aspen which he vowed he would place on Croak Malloy's grave.

"Wal, wal, we have our ups and downs," replied the old rancher, when all
was said. "An' I say you got off easy...My news is good news. Blodgett's
riders rounded up your stampeded stock. All the range knows Malloy is
dead an' the Hash-Knife no more. Spread like wildfire. Yellow Jacket will
prosper now, an', my! what a gorgeous place! An', Jim, you won't be
lonesome, either, when you settle down with the little wife. Allen
Blodgett is takin' charge of his father's range, an' he'll live there.
Jack Way's wife's father will start him ranchin'. Miller is goin' to move
down. An' in no time this valley will be hummin'. An' I near forgot. The
doctor come back from West Fork, reportin' Slinger Dunn out of danger."

That, of all news, was the best for Jim, who found his joy and gratitude
in Molly's brimming eyes.

"Rustlin' will go on," continued Uncle Jim, "but no more at the old
Hash-Knife rate. It'll be two-bit stealin' an' thet we don't mind."

After supper, when the old rancher had Jim, Gloriana, Molly, and Curly
alone, he pulled a soiled paper from his pocket. His air was strikingly
momentous.

"I'm askin' you never to tell what I read you now. Promise?"

Surprised at his earnestness, at his fine softened face, strangely pale,
they solemnly pledged themselves, whereupon Uncle Jim adjusted his
eye-glasses and began to read slowly:

"TOBE'S WELL,

"DEAR JIM,

"I changed my mind about the money your rider fetched down. I
appropriated it an' am leavin' this letter instead. You owe me thet, to
make a new start in life.

"Thet niece of yours, Gloriana, offered to make a sacrifice. Same as I
twenty years ago, to save my pard. For the sweet-heart we both loved an'
which he never got, after all. It sort of faced me back on the old
forgotten trail. Jim, it's never too late.

"Tell her, if she ever has a boy to call him 'Jed.'"


THE END





This site is full of FREE ebooks - Project Gutenberg Australia